mffi THE LIBRARY OF THE UNIVERSITY OF CALIFORNIA LOS ANGELES GIFT JESS BY H. RIDER HAGGARD AUTHOR OP "KING SOLOMON'S MINES" "SHE" ETC. NEW YORK HARPER & BROTHERS, FRANKLIN SQUARE 1 887 College Library CONTENTS. I. JOHN HAS AN ADVENTURE 1 IT. How THE SISTERS CAME TO MOOIFONTEIN. ... 8 III. MR. FRANK MULLER 20 IV. BESSIE is ASKED IN MARRIAGE 29 V. DREAMS ARE FOOLISHNESS 39 VI. THE STORM BREAKS 47 VII. LOVE'S YOUNG DREAM 57 VIII. JESS GOES TO PRETORIA 66 IX. JANTJE'S STORY 75 X. JOHN HAS AN ESCAPE 83 XI. ON THE BRINK 96 XII. OVER IT 105 XIII. FRANK MULLER SHOWS HIS HAND 117 XIV. JOHN TO THE RESCUE 127 XV. A ROUGH JOURNEY 137 XVI. PRETORIA 147 XVII. THE TWELFTH OF FEBRUARY 156 XVIII. AND AFTER 1C7 XIX. HANS COETZEE COMES TO PRETORIA 1 70 XX. THE GREAT MAN ISO XXI- JESS GETS A PASS 195 XXII. ON THE ROAD . 204 XXIII. IN THE DRIFT OF THE VAAL 213 XXIV. THE SHADOW OF DEATH 226 XXV. MEANWHILE. 236 1C 42339 iv CONTENTS. CHAPTER PAGE XXVI. FRANK MULLER'S FAMILIAR 247 XXVII. SILAS is CONVINCED 256 XXVIII. BESSIE is PUT TO THE QUESTION 268 XXIX. CONDEMNED TO DEATH 279 XXX. " WE MUST PART, JOHN " 288 XXXI. JESS FINDS A FRIEND 297 XXXII. HE SHALL DDE 306 XXXIII. VENGEANCE -. 317 XXXIV. TANTA COETZEE TO THE RESCUE 327 XXXV. THE CONCLUSION OF THE MATTER . 335 JESS. CHAPTER I. JOHN HAS AN ADVENTUBE. THE day had been very hot even for the Transvaal, where, even in the autumn, the days still know how to be hot, although the neck of the summer is broken, that is, when the thunder-storms hold off for a week or two, as they occasionally will. Even the succulent blue lilies a variety of the agapanthus which is so familiar to us in Eng- lish greenhouses hung their long trumpet-shaped flowers and looked oppressed and miserable, beneath the burning breath of the hot wind which had been blowing for hours like the draught of a volcano. The grass, too, near the wide roadway, that stretched in a feeble and indetermi- nate sort of fashion across the veldt, forking, branching, and reuniting like the veins on a lady's arm, was com- pletely coated over with a thick layer of red dust. But the hot wind was going down now, as it always does tow- ards sunset. Indeed, all that remained of it were a few strictly local and miniature whirlwinds, which would sud- denly spring up on the road itself, and twist and twirl fiercely round, raising a mighty column of dust fifty feet or more into the air, where it hung long after the cause of it had passed, and then slowly dissolved as its partic-U-s floated to the earth. Coming along the road, in the immediate track of one of these desultory and inexplicable whirlwinds, was a man 1 2 JESS. on horseback. The man looked limp and dirty, and the horse limper and dirtier. The hot wind had taken all the bones out of them, as the Kaffirs say, which was not very much to be wondered at, seeing that they had been jour- neying through it for the last four hours, without off-sad- dling. Suddenly the whirlwind, which had been travel- ling along pretty smartly, halted, and the dust, after turning round a few times in the air like a dying top, slowly began to dissolve in the accustomed fashion. The man on the horse halted too, and contemplated it in an absent kind of way. " It's just like a man's life," he said aloud to his horse, "coming from nobody knows where, nobody knows why, and making a little column of dust on the world's high- way, and then passing away and leaving the dust to fall to the ground again, and be trodden under-foot and for- gotten." The speaker, a stout, well set-up, rather ugly man, ap- parently on the wrong side of thirty, with pleasant blue eyes and a reddish' -peaked beard, laughed a little at his own sententious reflection, and then gave his jaded horse a tap w r ith the sjambock in his hand. " Come on, Blesbok," he said, " or we shall never get to old Croft's place to-night. By Jove! I believe that must be the turn," and he pointed with his whip to a lit- tle rutty track that turned from the Wakkerstroom main road and stretched away towards a curious isolated hill with a large flat top, that rose out of the rolling plain some four miles to the right. "The old Boer said the second turn," he went on, still talking to himself, " but perhaps he lied. I am told that some of them think it a good joke to send an Englishman a few miles wrong. Let's see, they said the place was under the lee of a table- topped hill, about half an hour's ride from the main road, and that is a table-topped hill, so I think I will try it. Come on, Blesbok," and he put the tired nag into a sort JESS. 3 of "tripple," or ambling canter much affected by South African horses. " Life is a queer thing," reflected Captain John Niel to himself as he slowly cantered along. " Now here am I, at the age of thirty-four, about to begin the world again as assistant to an old Transvaal farmer. ^ It is a pretty end to all one's ambitions, and to fourteen years' work in the army; but it is what it has to come to, my boy, so you had better make the best of it." Just then his cogitations were interrupted, for on the farther side of a gentle slope there suddenly appeared an extraordinary sight. Over the crest of the rise of land, now some four or five hundred yards away, a pony with a lady on its back came wildly galloping, and after it, with wings spread and outstretched neck, a huge cock ostrich was speeding along, covering twelve or fifteen feet at every stride of its long legs. The pony was still twen- ty yards ahead of the bird, and coming towards John rapidly, but strive as it would it could not distance the swiftest thing on all the earth. Five seconds passed the great bird was close alongside now Ah! and John Kiel turned sick and shut his eyes as he rode, for he saw the ostrich's thick leg fly high into the air and then sweep down like a leaded bludgeon. Thud! It had missed the lady and struck her horse upon the spine, behind the saddle, for the moment com- pletely paralyzing it, so that it fell all of a heap on to the veldt. In a moment the girl on its back was up and off towards him, and after her came the ostrich. Up went the great leg again, but before it came crashing on to her shoulders she had flung herself face downwards on the grass. In an instant the huge bird was on top of her, kicking at her, rolling over her, and crushing the very life out of her. It was at this juncture that John Niel arrived upon the scene. The moment the ostrich saw him he gave up his attacks upon the lady on the ground and began to 4 JESS. waltz towards him with a pompous sort of step that these birds sometimes assume before they give battle. Now, Captain Niel was unaccustomed to the ways of ostriches, and so was his horse, which showed a strong inclination to bolt ; as, indeed, under other circumstances, his rider would have been glad to do himself. But he could not abandon beauty in distress, so, finding it impossible to control his horse, he slipped off it, and with his sjambock, or hide-whip, in his hand, valiantly faced the enemy. For a moment or two the great bird stood still, blinking its lustrous eyes at him and gently swaying its graceful neck to and fro. Then all of a sudden it spread out its wings and came for him like a thunderbolt. He sprang to one side, and was aware of a rustle of rustling feathers, and of a vision of a thick leg striking downwards past his head. Fortunately it missed him, and the ostrich sped past like a flash. Before he could turn, however, it was back and had landed the full weight of one of its awful forward kicks in the broad of his back, and away he went head-over-heels like a shot rabbit. In a second he was on his legs again, shaken, indeed, but not much the worse, and perfectly mad with fury and pain. At him came the ostrich, and at the ostrich went he, catch- ing it a blow across the slim neck with his sjambock, that staggered it for a moment. Profiting by the check, he seized the bird by the wing and held on like grim death with both hands. Then they began to gyrate, slowly at first, then quicker, and yet more quick, till at last it seemed to Captain John Kiel that time and space and the solid earth were nothing but a revolving vision fixed somewhere in the watches of the night. Above him, like a stationary pivot, towered the tall, graceful neck, beneath him spun the top-like legs, and in front of him was a soft black and white mass of feathers. Thud, and a cloud of stars ! He was on his back, and the ostrich, who did not seem to be affected by giddiness, was on him, punishing him dreadfully. Luckily an ostrich JESS. 5 cannot kick a man very hard when he is flat on the ground. If lie could, there would have been an end of John Niel, and this story need never have been written. Half a minute or so passed, during which the bird worked his sweet will upon his prostrate enemy, and at the end of it the man began to feel very much as though his earthly career was closed. Just as things were growing faint and dim to him, however, he suddenly saw a pair of white arms clasp themselves round the ostrich's legs from behind, and heard a voice cry: " Break his neck while I hold his legs, or he will kill you." This roused him from his torpor, and he staggered to his feet. Meanwhile the ostrich and the young lady had come to the ground, and were rolling about together in a confused heap, over which the elegant neck and open hiss- ing mouth wavered to and fro like a cobra about to strike. With a rush he seized the neck in both his hands, and, put- ting out all his strength (for he was a strong man), he twisted it till it broke with a snap, and after a few wild and convulsive bounds and struggles the great bird lay dead. Then he sank down dazed and exhausted, and surveyed the scene. The ostrich was perfectly quiet, and would never kick again, and the lady too was quiet. He won- dered vaguely if the brute had killed her he was as yet too weak to go and see and then fell to gazing at her face. Her head was pillowed on the body' of the dead bird, and its feathery plumes made it a -fitting resting- place. Slowly it dawned on him that the face was very beautiful, although it looked so pale just now. Low, broad brow:, crowned with' soft, yellow'. hair, the chin very round and white, the- mouth sweef though rather large. The eyes he could not see, because they were closed, for the lady had fainted. For the rest, she was quite young about twenty, tall, and finely formed. Presently he got 6 JESS. a little better, and, creeping towards her (for he was sadly knocked about), took her hand and began to chafe it be- tween his own. It was a well-formed hand, but brown, and showed signs of doing plenty of hard work. Soon she opened her eyes, and he noted with satisfaction that they were very good eyes, blue in color. Then she sat up and laughed a little. "Well, I am silly," she said ; "I believe I fainted." " It is not much to be wondered at," said John Niel, po- litely, and lifting his hand to take off his hat, only to find that it had gone in the fray. " I hope you are not very much hurt by the bird." " I don't know," she said, doubtfully. " But I am glad that you killed the skellum (vicious beast). He got out of the ostrich camp three days ago, and has been lost ever since. He killed a boy last year, and I told uncle he ought to shoot him then, but he would not, because he was such a beauty." "Might I ask," said John Niel, "are you Miss Croft?" " Yes, I am one of them. There are two of us, you know ; and I can guess who you are you are Captain Niel, whom uncle is expecting to help him with the farm and the ostriches." " If all of them are like that," he said, pointing to the dead bird, " I don't think that I shall take kindly to ostrich farming." She laughed, showing a charming line of teeth. " Oh, no," she said, " he was the only bad one but, Captain Niel, I think you will find it fearfully dull. There are nothing but Boers about here, you know. There are no English people nearer than Wakkerstroom." " You overlook yourself," he said, politely ; for really this daughter of the wilderness had a very charming air about her. "Oh," she answered, "I am only a girl, you know, and besides, I am not clever. Jess, now that's my sister Jess JESS. 7 has been at school at Cape Town, and she is clever. I was at Cape Town, too, but I didn't learn much there. But, Captain Niel, both the horses have bolted ; mine has gone home, and I expect yours has followed, and I should like to know how we are going to get up to Mooifontein (beau- tiful fountain, that's what we call our place, you know). Can you walk ?" " I don't know," he answered, doubtfully ; " I'll try. That bird has knocked me about a good deal," and accord- ingly he staggered on to his legs, only to collapse with an exclamation of pain. His ankle was sprained, and he was so stiff and bruised that he could hardly stir. " How far is the house ?" he asked. " Only about a mile just there ; we shall see it from the crest of the rise. Look, I'm all right. It was silly to faint, but he kicked all the breath out of me," and she got up and danced a little on the grass to show him. " My word, though, I am sore ! You must take my arm, that's all ; that is, if you don't mind ?" u Oh dear, no, indeed, I don't mind," he said, laughing ; and so they started, arm affectionately linked in arm. CHAPTER IL HOW THE SISTERS CAME TO MOOIFOXTEIN. " CAPTAIN NIEL," said Bessie Croft (for that was her name) when they had painfully limped one hundred yards or so, " will you think me rude if I ask you a ques- tion ?" "Not at all." . " What has induced you to come and bury yourself in this place ?" " Why do you ask ?" "Because I don't think that you will "like it. I don't think," she added, slowly, "that it is a fit place for an Eng- lish gentleman and" an army officer like you. You will find the Boer ways horrid, and then there will only be my old uncle and us two for you to associate with." John Niel laughed. "English gentlemen ain't so par- ticular nowadays, I can tell you, Miss Croft, especially when they have to earn a living. Take my case, for in- stance, for I may as well tell you exactly how I stand. I have been in the army fourteen years, and am now thirty- four. Well, I have been able to live there because I had an old aunt who allowed me one hundred and twenty pounds a year. Six months ago she died, leaving me the little property she possessed, for most of her income came from an annuity. After paying expenses, duty, etc., it amounts to eleven hundred and fifteen pounds. Now, the interest on that is about fifty pounds a year, and I can't live in the army on that. Just after my aunt's death I came to Dur- ban with my regiment from Mauritius, and now they are JESS.' ordered home. Well, I liked the country, and I knew that I could not afford to live at home, so I got a year's leave of absence, and made up my mind to have a look round to see if I could not take to farming. Then a gentleman in Durban told me of your uncle, and said that he wanted to dispose of a third interest in his place for a thousand pounds, as he was getting too old to manage it himself ; and so I entered into correspondence with him, and agreed to come up for a few months to see how I liked it ; and accordingly here I am, just in time to save you from being knocked to bits by an ostrich." " Yes, indeed," she answered, laughingly ; " you've had a warm welcome at any rate. Well, I hope you will like it." Just as he finished his story they got to the top of the rise over which the ostrich had pursued Bessie Croft, and saw a Kaffir coming towards them, leading the pony in one hand and Captain Niel's horse in the other. About a hundred yards behind the horses a lady was walking. " Ah," said Bessie, " they've caught the horses, and here is Jess come to see what is the matter." By this time the lady in question was quite close, so that John was able to get a first impression of her. She was small and rather thin, with quantities of ; curling brown hair ; not by any means a lovely woman, as her sister un- doubtedly was, but possessing two very remarkable char- acteristics- a complexion of extraordinary and uniform pallor, and a pair of the most beautiful dark eyes he had ever looked on. Altogether, though her size was al- most insignificant, she was a striking-looking person, with a face one was not likely to forget. Before he had time to observe any -niore they were up to them. " What on e'arith is the matter, Bessie ?" she said, with a quick glance at her companion, and speaking in a low, full voice, with just a slight South African accent, that is tak- ing enough in a pretty woman. Whereupon Bessie broke 10 'JESS. out with a history of their adventure, appealing to her com- panion for confirmation at intervals. Meanwhile her sister Jess stood quite still and silent, and it struck Captain Niel that her face was the most sin- gularly impassive one he had ever seen. It never changed, even when her sister told how the ostrich rolled on her and nearly killed her, or how they finally subdued the foe. " Dear me," he thought to himself, " what a very remark- able woman ! She can't have much heart." But just as he thought it the girl looked up, and then he saw where the expression lay. It was in those remarkable eyes. Im- passive as her face was, the dark eyes were alight with life and a sort of excitement that made them shine gloriously. The contrast between the shining eyes and the impassive face beneath them struck him as so extraordinary as to be almost uncanny ; and, as a matter of fact, it was doubtless both unusual and remarkable. " You have had a wonderful escape, but I am sorry for the bird," she said at last. " Why ?" asked John. " Because we were great friends. I was the only person who could manage him." " Yes," put in Bessie, " the savage brute would follow her about like a dog. It was just the oddest thing I ever saw. But come on ; we must be getting home, it's grow- ing dark. Mouti" (medicine) addressing the Kaffir in Zulu "help Captain Niel on to his horse. Be careful that the saddle does not twist round ; the girths may be loose." Thus adjured, John, with the help of the Zulu, clambered into his saddle, an example that the lady quickly followed, and they once more set off through the gathering darkness. Presently he became aware that they were passing up a drive bordered by tall blue-gums, and next minute the barking of a large dog and the sudden appearance of lighted windows told him that they had reached the house. JESS. 11 At the door or, rather, opposite to it, for there was a ve- randa in front they stopped and got off their horses. As they did so, out of the house there came a shout of wel- come, and presently in the doorway, showing out clear against the light, appeared a striking and, in its way, most pleasant figure. He for it was a man was very tall, or, rather, he had been very tall. Now he was much bent with age and rheumatism. His long white hair hung low upon his neck, and fell back from a prominent brow. The top of the head was quite bald, like the tonsure of a priest, and shone and glistened in the lamplight, and round this oasis the thin white locks fell down. The face was shrivelled like the surface of a well-kept apple, and, like an apple, rosy red. The features were aquiline and well- marked, the eyebrows still black and very bushy, and be- neath them shone a pair of gray eyes, as keen and bright as hawks'. But for all its sharpness, there was nothing unpleasant or fierce about the face. On the contrary, it was pervaded by a remarkable air of good-nature and pleas- ant shrewdness. For the rest, the man was dressed in rough tweed clothes, tall riding-boots, and held a broad- brimmed Boer hunting -hat in his hand. Such was the outer man of old Silas Croft, one of the most remarkable men in the Transvaal, as John Niel first saw him. " Is that you, Captain Niel ?" roared out the stentorian voice. " The natives said you were coming. A welcome to you ! I am glad to see you very glad. Why, what is the matter with you ?" he went on as the Zulu Mouti ran to help him off his horse. " Matter, Mr. Croft ?" answered John: "why, the matter is that your favorite ostrich has nearly killed me and your niece here, and that I have killed your favorite ostrich." Then followed explanations from Bessie, during which he was helped off his horse and into the house. " It serves me right," said the old man. " To think of it now, just to think of it ! Well, Bessie, my love, thank 12 JE&S. God that you escaped aye, and you too, Captain Niel. Here, you boys, take the Scotch cart and a couple of oxen and go and fetch the brute home. We may as well have the feathers off him, at any rate, before the aasvogels (vult- ures) tear him to bits." After he had washed himself and tended his injuries with arnica and water, John managed to get into the principal sitting-room, where supper was waiting. It was a Very pleasant room, furnished in European style, and carpeted with mats made of springbuck skins. In the corner was a piano, and by it a bookcase, filled with the works of standard authors, the property, as John rightly guessed, of Bessie's sister Jess. Supper went off pleasantly enough, and after it was over the two girls sang and played while the men smoked. And here a fresh surprise awaited him, for after Bessie, who had now apparently almost recovered from her mauling, had played a piece or two creditably enough, Jess, who so far had been nearly silent, sat down to the .piano. She did not do this willingly, indeed, for it was- not until her patri- archal uncle had insisted in his ringing, cheery voice that she should let Captain Niel hear how she could sing, that she consented. But at last she did consent, and then, after letting her fingers stray somewhat aimlessly along the chords, she suddenly broke out into such song as John Niel had never heard before. Her voice, beautiful as it was, was not what is known as a cultivated voice, and it was a German song, and therefore he did not understand it, but there was no need of words to translate its burden. Passion, despairing yet hoping through its despair, echoed in its every line, and love, unending love, hovered over the glorious notes nay, descended on them like a spirit, and made them his. Up!- up! rang her- wiLd^-teweet voice, thrill- ing his nerves till they answered to the music as an ^Eolian harp answers to the winds. On went the song with a divine sweep, like the sweep of rushing pinions; JESS. 13 higher; higher, yet higher, it soared, lifting up the listener's heart far above the world on the trembling wings of sound ay, even higher, till the music hung at heaven's gate, and then it fell, swiftly as an eagle falls, quivered, and was dead. John gave a gasp, and, so strongly was he moved, sank back in his chair, feeling almost faint with the revulsion of feeling that ensued when the notes had died away. He looked up, and caught Bessie watching him with an air of curiosity and amusement. Jess was still leaning against the piano, and gently touching the notes, over which her head was bent low, showing the coils of curling hair which were twisted round it like a coronet. "Well, Captain Niel," said the old man, waving his pipe in her direction, " and what do you say to my singing-bird's music, eh? Isn't it enough to draw the heart out of a man, eh, and turn his marrow to water, eh ?" ." I never heard anything quite like it," he answered, simply, " and I have heard most singers. It is beautiful. Certainly, I never expected to hear such singing in the Transvaal." She turned quickly, and he observed that, though her eyes were alight with excitement, her face was as impas- sive as ever. ' " There is no need for you to laugh at me, Captain Niel," she said, quickly, and then, with an abrupt " Good-night," left the room. The old man smiled, jerked the stem of his pipe over lii* shoulder after her, and winked in a way that, no doubt, meant unutterable things, but which did not convey much to his astonished guest, who sat still and said nothing. Then Bessie got up and bade him good-night in her pleas- ant voice, and with housewifely care inquired as to whether his room was to his liking, and how many blankets he liked upon his bed, telling him that if he found the odor of the moonflowers that grew near the veranda too strong, he had better shut the right-hand window and open that on 14 JESS. the other side of the room ; and then at length, with a piquant little nod of her golden head, she went off, look- ing, he thought as he watched her retreating figure, about as healthy, graceful, and generally satisfactory a young woman as a man could wish to see. " Take a glass of grog, Captain Niel," said the old man, pushing the square bottle towards him, " you'll need it after the mauling that brute gave you. By the way, I haven't thanked you enough for saving my Bessie! But I do thank you, yes, that I do. I must tell you that Bessie is my favorite niece. Never was there such a girl never. Moves like a springbuck, and what an eye and form! Work, too she'll do as much work as three. There's no nonsense about Bessie, none at all. She's not a fine lady, for all her fine looks." " The two sisters seem very different," said John. " Ay, you're right there," said the old man. " You'd never think that the same blood ran in their veins, would you? There's three years between them, that's one thing. Bessie's the youngest, you see she's just twenty, and Jess is twenty-three. Lord, to think that it is twenty-three years since that girl was born! And theirs was a queer story too." " Indeed ?" said his listener, interrogatively. " Ay," he went on, absently, knocking out his pipe, and refilling it out of a big brown jar of coarse-cut Boer tobacco, " I'll tell it to you if you like ; you are going to live in the house, and you may as well know it. I am sure, Captain Niel, that it will go no further. You see I was born in England, yes, and well-born too. I come from Cambridgeshire from the fat fen-land down round Ely. My father was a clergyman. Well, he wasn't rich, and when I was twenty he gave me his blessing, thirty sover- eigns in my pocket, and my passage to the Cape ; and I shook his hand, God bless him, and off I came, and here in the old colony and this country I have been for fifty years, JESS. 15 for I was seventy yesterday. .Well, I'll tell you more about that another time, it's about the girls I'm speaking now. After I left home twenty years after, or hard on it my dear old father married again, a youngish woman with some money but beneath him somewhat in life, and by her he had one son and then died. Well, it was but little I heard of my half-brother, except that he had turned out very badly, married, and taken to drink, till one night some twelve years ago, when a strange thing happened. I was sitting here in this very room, ay, in this very chair for this part of the house was up then, though the wings weren't built and smoking my pipe, and listening to the lashing of the rain, for it was a very foul night, when sud- denly an old pointer dog I had, named Ben, gave a bark. " ' Lie down, Ben, it's only the Kaffirs,' said I. " Just then I thought I heard a faint sort of rapping at the door, and Ben barked again, so I got up and opened it, and jn came two little girls wrapped up in old shawls or some such gear. Well, I shut the door, looking out first to see if there were any more outside, and then I stood and stared at the two Irttle things with my mouth open. There they stood, hand m hand, the water dripping from both of them, and the elde*st might have been eleven, and the second about eight. They didn't say anything, but the eldest turned and took the shawl and hat -off the younger that was Bessie and there was her sweet little face and her golden hair, and damp enough both of them were, and she put her thumb 2h her mouth, and stood and looked at me till I began to think that I was dreaming. " ' Please, sir,' said the biggest at last, ' is this Mr. Croft's house Mr. Croft South African Republic?' " ' Yes, little thiss, this is his house, and this is the South African Republic, and I am he. And now who might you be, my dears ?' I answered. " ' If you please, sir, we are your nieces, and we have come to you from England.' 16 JESS. " 'What!' I halloaed, startled out of my wits, as well I might be. " ' Oh, sir,' says the poor little thing, clasping her thin, wet hands, ' please don't send us away. Bessie is so wet, and cold and hungry too, she isn't fit to go any farther.' " And she set to work to cry, whereon the little one cried too, from fright and cold and sympathy. " Well, of course I took them both to the fire, and set them on my knees, and halloaed for Hebe, the old Hotten- tot woman who did my'cooking, and between us we un- dressed them, and wrapped them up in some old clothes, and fed them with soup and wine, so that in half an hour they were quite happy and not a bit' frightened. " ' And now, young ladies,' I said, ' come and give me a kiss, both of you, and tell me how you came here.' " And this is the tale they told me completed, of course, from what I learned afterwards andean odd one it is. It seems that my half-brother married a Norfolk lady a sweet young thing and treated her like a dog. He was a drunken rascal, was my half-brother, and he beat his poor wife and shamefully neglected her, and;even ill-treated the two little girls, till at last the poor woinan, weak as she was from suffering and ill-health, could' bear it no longer, and formed the wild* idea of escaping to- this country and throwing herself upon my protection. It will show how desperate she must have been. She scraped together and borrowed some money, enough to pay for tbree second-class passages to Natal and a few pounds ovfer, and one day, when her brute of a husband was away on the drink and gamble, she slipped on board a sailing-ship in the London docks, and before he knew anything about it they were well out to sea. But it was her last effort, poor dear soul, and the excitement of it finished her. Before they had been ten days at sea she s'ank and died, and the two poor children were left alone. And what they must have suf- fered, or rather what poor Jess must have suffered, for she JESS. 11 was old enough to feel, God only knows. But I can tell you this, she has never got over the shock to this hour. It has left its mark on her, sir. But, let people say what they will, there is a Power that looks after the helpless, and that Power took those poor, homeless, wandering children under its wing. The captain of the vessel befriended them, and when at last they got to Durban some of the passen- gers made a subscription, and got an old Boer, who was coming up this way with his wife to the Transvaal, to take them under his charge. The Boer and his vrouw treated the children fairly well, but they did not do one thing more than they bargained for. At the turn from the Wakker- stroom road, that you came along to day, they put the children down, for they had no luggage with them, and told them that if they went along there they would come to Meinheer Croft's house. That was in the middle of the afternoon, and they were till eight o'clock getting here, poor little dears, for the track was fainter then than it is now, and they wandered off into the veldt, and would have perished there in the wet and cold had they not chanced to see the lights of the house. And that was how my nieces came here, Captain Niel. And here they have been ever since, except for a couple of years when I sent them to the Cape for schooling, and a lonely man I was when they were away." " And how about the father ?" asked John Niel, deeply interested. " Did you ever hear any more of him ?" "Hear of him, the villain!" almost shouted the old man, jumping up in wrath. "Aye, d n him, I heard of him. What do you think ? The two chicks had been with me some eighteen months, long enough for me to learn to love them with all my heart, when one fine morning, as I was seeing about the new kraal wall, I see a fellow come riding up on an old raw-boned gray horse. Up he comes to me, and as he came I looked at him, and said to myself, ' You are a drunkard, you are, and a rogue; it's written on your 2 18 JESS. face, and, what's more, I know your face.' You see I did not guess that it was a son of my own father's that I was looking at. How should I ? " ' Is your name Croft ?' he said. " ' Ay,' I answered. " ' So is mine,' he went on with a sort of a drunken leer. * I'm your brother.' " ' Are you ?' I said, beginning to get my back up, for I guessed what his game was, ' and what may you be after? I tell you at once, and to your face, that if you are my brother you are a blackguard, and I don't want to know you or have anything to do with you ; and if you are not, I beg your pardon for coupling you with such a scoundrel.' " ' Oh, that's your tune is it ?' he said, with a sneer. 'Well, now, my dear brother Silas, I want my children. They have got a little half-brother at home for I have married again, Silas who is anxious to have them to play with, so if you will be so good as to hand them over, I'll take them away at once.' " ' You'll take them away, will you ?' said I, all of a tremble with rage and fear. " ' Yes, Silas, I will. They are mine by law, and I am not going to breed children for you to have the comfort of their society. I've taken advice, Silas, and that's sound law,' and he leered at me again. " I stood and looked at the man, and thought of how he had treated those poor children and their young mother, and my blood boiled, and I grew mad. Without another word I jumped over the half -finished wall, and caught him by the leg (for I was a strong man ten years ago) and jerked him off the horse. As he came down he dropped the sjambock from his hand, and I caught hold of it and then and there gave him the soundest hiding a man ever had. Lord, how he did halloa ! When I was tired I let him get up. " * Now,' I said, ' be off with you, and if you come back JESS. ig here I'll bid the Kaffirs hunt you back to Natal with their sticks. This is the South African Republic, and we don't care overmuch about law here.' Which we didn't in those days. " ' All right, Silas,' he said, ' all right, you shall pay for this. I'll have those children, and, for your sake, I'll make their life a hell you mark my words South African Republic or no South African Republic. I've got the law on my side.' " Off he rode, cursing and swearing, and I flung his sjambock after him. And it was the first and last time that I saw my brother." " What became of him ?" asked John Niel. "I'll tell you, just to show you again that there is a Power that keeps just such men in its eye. He got back to Newcastle that night, and went about the canteen there abusing me, and getting drunker and drunker, till at last the canteen keeper sent for his boys to turn him out. Well, the boys were rough, as Kaffirs are apt to be with a drunken white man, and he struggled and fought, and in the middle of it the blood began to run from his mouth, and he dropped down dead of a broken blood-vessel, and there was an end of him. That is the story of the two girls, Captain Niel, and now I am off to bed. To-morrow I'll show you round the farm, and we will have a talk about business. Good-night to you, Captain Kiel. Good- night!" CHAPTER m. MR. FRANK MULLER. JOHN NIEL woke early the next morning, feeling as sore and stiff as though he had been well beaten and then strapped up tight in horse-girths. He made shift, how- ever, to dress himself, and then, with the help of a stick, limped through the French windows that opened from his room on to the veranda and surveyed the scene before him. It was a delightful spot. At the back of the house was the steep bowlder-strewn face of the flat-topped hill that curved round on each side, embosoming a great slope of green, in the lap of which the house was placed. The house itself was solidly built of brown stone, and, with the exception of the wagon-shed and other outhouses, which were roofed with galvanized iron that shone and glistened in the rays of the morning sun in a way that would have made an eagle blink, was covered with rich brown thatch. All along its front ran a wide veranda, up the trellis-work of which green vines and blooming creepers trailed pleas- antly, and beyond was the broad carriage-drive of red soil, bordered with bushy orange-trees laden with odorous flow- ers and green and golden fruit. On the farther side of the orange-trees were the gardens, fenced in with low walls of rough stone, and the orchard full of standard fruit-trees, and beyond these again the oxen and ostrich kraals, the latter full of long-necked birds. To the right of the house grew thriving plantations of blue-gum and black wattle, and to the left was a broad stretch of cultivated lands, lying so that they could be irrigated for winter crops by JESS. 21 means of water led from the great spring that gushed from the mountain-side high above the house and gave its name of Mooifontein to the place. All these and many more things John Niel saw as he looked out from the veranda at Mooifontein, but, for the moment at any rate, they were lost in the wild and wonder- ful beauty of the panorama that rolled away for miles and miles at his feet, till it was ended by the mighty range of the Drakensberg to the left, tipped here and there with snow, and by the dim and vast horizon of the swelling Transvaal plains to the right and far in front of him. It was a beautiful sight, and one to make the blood run in a man's veins and his heart beat happily because he was alive to see it. Mile upon mile of grass-clothed veldt beneath, bending and rippling like a corn-field in the quick breath of the morning, space upon space of deep blue sky over- head with ne'er a cloud to dim it, and the swift rush of the wind between. Then to the left there, impressive to look on and conducive to solemn thoughts, the mountains rear their crests against the sky, and, crowned with the gath- ered snows of the centuries whose monuments they are, from aeon to aeon gaze majestically out over the wide plains and the ephemeral, antlike races that tread them, and while they endure think themselves the masters of their little world. And over all mountain, plain, and flashing stream the glorious light of the African sun and the Spirit of Life moving now as it once moved upon the dark- ling waters. John stood and gazed at the untamed beauty of the scene, in his mind comparing it to many cultivated views that he had known, and coming to the conclusion that, however desirable the presence of civilized man might be in the world, it could not be said that his operations really added to its beauty. For the old line, " Nature unadorned adorned the most," still remains true in more senses than one. Presently his reflections were interrupted by the step 22 JESS. of Silas Croft, which, notwithstanding his age and bent frame, still rang firm enough and he turned to greet him. "Well, Captain Niel," said the old man, "up already! It looks well if you mean to take to farming. Yes, it's a pretty view, and a pretty place, too. Well, I made it. Twenty-five years ago I rode up here and saw this spot. Look, you see that rock there behind the house; I slept under it and woke at sunrise and looked out at this beautiful view and at the great veldt (it was all alive with game then), and I said to myself, 'Silas, for five-and- twenty years have you wandered about this great country, and now you are getting tired of it; you've never seen a fairer spot than this or a healthier; now be a wise man and stop here.' And so I did. I bought the three thou- sand morgen (six thousand acres), more or less, for 10 down and a case of gin, and I set to work to make this place, and you see I have made it. Ay, it has grown under my hand, every stone and tree of it, and you know what that means in a new country. But one way and an- other I have done it, and now I have got too old to man- age it, and that's how I came to give out that I wanted a partner, as old Snow told you down in Durban. You see, I told Snow it must be a gentleman; I don't care much about the money, I'll take a thousand for a third share if I can get a gentleman none of your Boers or mean whites for me. I tell you I have had enough of Boers and their ways; the best day of my life was when old Shepstone ran up the Union Jack there in Pretoria and I could call my- self an Englishman again. Lord! and to think that there are men who are subjects of the queen and want to be subjects of a republic again ! Mad ! Captain Kiel, I tell you, quite mad! However, there's an end of it all now. You know what Sir Garnet Wolseley told them in the name of the queen up at the Vaal River, that this country would remain English till the sun stood still in the heavens JESS. 23 and the waters of the Vaal ran backwards. That's good enough for me, for, as I tell these grumbling fellows who want the land back now that we have paid their debts and defeated their enemies, no English government goes back on its word, or breaks engagements solemnly entered into by its representatives. We leave that sort of thing to foreigners. No, no, Captain Niel, I would not ask you to take a share in this place if I wasn't sure that it would re- main under the British flag. But we will talk of all this another time, and now come in to breakfast." After breakfast, as John was far too lame to go about the farm, the fair Bessie suggested that he should come and help her to wash a batch of ostrich feathers, and, ac- cordingly, off he went. The locus operandi was in a space of grass in the rear of a little clump of " naatche " orange- trees, of which the fruit is like that of the Maltese orange, only larger. Here were placed an ordinary washing-tub half filled with warm water and a tin bath full of cold. The ostrich feathers, many of which were completely coated with red dirt, were plunged first into the tub of warm water, where John Niel scrubbed them with soap, and then transferred to the tin bath, where Bessie rinsed them and then laid them on a sheet in the sun to dry. The morning was very pleasant, and John soon came to the conclusion that there are many more disagreeable occupations in the world than the washing of ostrich feathers with a lovely girl to help you ; for there was no doubt but that she was lovely, a very type of happy, healthy womanhood, as she sat there opposite to him on the little stool, her sleeves rolled up almost to the shoul- der, showing a pair of arms that would not have disgraced a statue of Venus, and laughed and chatted away as she washed the feathers. Now, John Niel was not a suscepti- ble man: he had gone through the fire years before and burned his fingers like many another confiding youngster; but, all the same, he did wonder, as he sat there and watched 24 JESS. this fair girl, who somehow reminded him of a rich rose- bud bursting into bloom, how long it would be possible to live in the same house with her without falling under the spell of her charm and beauty. And then he began to think of Jess, and what a strange contrast the two were. " Where is your sister ?" he asked, presently. " Jess ? Oh, I think that she has gone to the Lion Kloof, reading or sketching, I don't know which. You see in this establishment I represent labor and Jess represents intellect," and she nodded her head prettily at him, and added, " There is a mistake somewhere ; she got all the brains." " Ah," said John, quietly, and looking up at her, " I don't think that you are entitled to complain of the way that nature has treated you." She blushed a little, more at the tone of his voice than the words, and went on hastily, " Jess is the dearest, best, and cleverest woman in the whole world there, I believe that she has only one fault, and that is that she thinks too much about me. Uncle told me that he had told you how we came here first when I was eight years old. Well, I remember that when we lost our way on the veldt that night, and it rained so and was so cold, Jess took off her own shawl and wrapped it round me over my own. Well, it has been just like that with her always. I am always to have the shawl everything is to give way to me. But there, that is Jess all over; she is very cold, cold as a stone, I sometimes think, but when she does care for anybody it is enough to frighten one. I don't know a great number of women, but somehow I don't think that there can be many in the world like Jess. She is too good for this wild place, she ought to go away to England and write books and become a famous woman, only " she added, reflectively, " I am afraid that Jess's books would all be sad ones." JESS. 25 Just then Bessie stopped and suddenly changed color, the bunch of lank, wet feathers she held in her hand dropping from it with a little splash back into the bath. Following her glance, John looked down the avenue of blue-gum trees and perceived a big man with a broad hat and mounted on a splendid black horse, cantering leisurely towards the house. " Who is that, Miss Croft ?" he asked. " It is a man I don't like," she said, with a little stamp of her foot. "His name is Frank Muller, and he is half a Boer and half an Englishman. He is very rich, and very clever, and owns all the land round this place, so uncle has to be civil to him, though he does not like him either. I wonder what he wants now." On came the horse, and John thought that its rider was going to pass without seeing them, when suddenly the movement of Bessie's dress between the " naatche " trees caught his eye, and he pulled up and looked round. He was a large and exceedingly handsome man, apparently about forty years old, with clear-cut features, cold, light-blue eyes, and a remarkable golden beard that hung right down over his chest. For a Boer he was rather smartly dressed, in English-made tweed clothes and tall riding-boots. "Ah, Miss Bessie," he called out in English, "there you are, with your pretty arms all bare. I'm in luck to come just in time to see them. Shall I come and help you to wash the feathers ? Only say the word, now " Just then he caught sight of John Niel and checked himself. " I have come to look for a black ox, branded with a heart and a ' W inside of the heart. Do you know if your uncle has seen it on the place anywhere ?" " No, Meinheer Muller," replied Bessie, coldly, " but he is down there," pointing at a kraal on the plain some half- mile away, "if you want to go and ask about it." " Mr. Muller," said he, by way of correction, and with a 26 JESS. curious contraction of the brow. " ' Meinheer ' is all very well for the Boers, but we are all Englishmen now. Well, the ox can wait. With your permission, I'll stop here till 'Oom' Croft (Uncle Croft) conies back," and, without further ado, he jumped off his horse and, slipping the reins over its head as an indication to it to stand still, advanced towards Bessie with outstretched hand. As he did so the young lady plunged both her arms up to the elbows in the bath, and it struck John, who was observing the whole scene, that she did this in order to avoid the necessity of shaking hands with her stalwart visitor. " Sorry my hands are wet," she said, giving him a cold little nod. "Let me introduce you, Mr. (with emphasis) Frank Muller Captain Kiel who has come to help my uncle with the place." John stretched out his hand and Muller shook it. "Captain," he said, interrogatively; "a ship captain, I suppose ?" "No," said John, "a captain of the English army." " Oh, a rooibaatje (red jacket). Well, I don't wonder at your taking to farming after the Zulu war." "I don't quite understand you," said John, rather coldly. " Oh, no offence, captain, no offence. I only meant that you rooibaatje did not come very well out of the war. I was there with Piet Uys, and it was a sight, I can tell you. A Zulu had only to show himself at night and one would see your regiments skreck (stampede) like a span of oxen when they wind a lion. And then they'd fire ah, they did fire anyhow, anywhere, but mostly at the clouds, there was no stopping them; and so, you see, I thought that you would like to turn your sword into a ploughshare, as the Bible says but no offence, I'm sure no offence." All this while John Niel, being English to his backbone, and cherishing the reputation of his profession almost as dearly as his own honor, was boiling with inward wrath, JESS. 27 which was all the fiercer because he knew that there was some truth in the Boer's insults. He had the sense, how- ever, to keep his temper outwardly, at any rate. " I was not in the Zulu war, Mr. Muller," he said, and just then old Silas Croft came riding up, and the conver- sation dropped. Mr. Frank Muller stopped to dinner and far on into the afternoon. His lost ox seemed to have entirely slipped his memory. There he sat, close to the fair Bessie, smok- ing and drinking gin-and-water, and talking with great volubility in English sprinkled with Boer-Dutch terms that John Niel did not understand, and gazing at the young lady in a manner which John somehow found unpleasant. Of course it was no affair of his, and he had no interest in the matter, but for all that he found the remarkable-look- ing Dutchman exceedingly disagreeable. At last, indeed, he could stand it no longer, and hobbled out for a little walk with Jess, who, in her abrupt way, offered to show him the garden. " You don't like that man ?" she said to him, as they slowly went down the slope in front of the house. "No; do you?" " I think," replied Jess, slowly and with much emphasis, " that he is the most odious man that I ever saw and the most curious ;" and then she relapsed into silence, only broken now and again by an occasional remark about the flowers and trees. Half an hour afterwards, when they arrived again at the top of the slope, Mr. Muller was just riding off down the avenue of blue-gums. By the veranda stood a Hottentot named Jautje, who had been holding the Dutchman's horse. He was a curious, wizened-up little fellow, dressed in rags, and with hair like the worn tags of a black woollen carpet. His age might have been anything between twenty-five and sixty ; it was impossible to form any opinion on the point. Just now, however, his yellow monkey face was convulsed 28 JESS. with an expression of intense malignity, and he was stand- ing there in the sunshine cursing rapidly and beneath his breath in Dutch, and shaking his fist after the retreating Boer a very epitome of impotent, overmastering passion. " What is he doing ?" asked John. Jess laughed. " Jantje does not like Frank Muller any more than I do, but I don't know why. He will never tell me." CHAPTER IV. BESSIE IS ASKED IN MARRIAGE. IN due course John Niel got over his sprained ankle and the other injuries inflicted on him by the infuriated cock ostrich (it is, by the way, a humiliating thing to be knocked out of time by a feathered fowl), and set to work to learn the routine of farm life. He did not find this a disagreeable task, especially when he had so fair an in- structi'ess as Bessie, who knew all about it, to show him the way in which he should go. Naturally of an ener- getic and hard-working temperament, he very soon got more or less into the swing of the thing, and at the end of six weeks began to talk quite learnedly of cattle and ostriches and sweet and sour veldt. About once a week or so Bessie used to put him through a regular examina- tion as to his progress; also she gave him lessons in Dutch and Zulu, both of which tongues she spoke to perfection ; so it will be seen that he did not lack for pleasant and profitable employment. Another thing was that he grew much attached to old Silas Croft. The old gentleman, with his handsome, honest face, his large and varied stock of experience, and his sturdy English character, made a great impression on his mind. He had never met a man quite like him before. Nor was the liking unrecipro- cated, for his host took a wonderful fancy to John Niel. " You see, my dear," he explained to his niece Bessie, "he's quiet, and he doesn't know much about farming, but he's willing to learn, and he's such a gentleman. Now, where one has Kaffirs to deal with, as on a place like this, 30 JESS. you must have a gentleman. Your mean white will never get anything out of a Kaffir; that's why the Boers kill them and flog them, because they can't get anything out of them without. But you see Captain Niel gets on well enough with them. I think he'll do, my dear, I think he'll do," and Bessie quite agreed with him. And so it came to pass that after this six weeks' trial the bargain was finally struck, and John paid over his thousand pounds and took a third interest in Mooifontein. Now it is not possible, in a general way, for a young- ish man like John Niel to live in the same house with a young and lovely woman like Bessie Croft without run- ning more or less risk of entanglement. More especially is this so where the two people have little or no outside society or distraction to divert the attention from each other. Not that there was as yet, at any rate, the slight- est hint of affection between them. Only they liked one another very much, and found it pleasant to be a good deal together. In short, they were walking along that easy, winding road that leads to the mountain paths of love. It is a very broad road, like another road that rune elsewhere, and, also like this last, it has a wide gate. Sometimes, too, it leads to destruction. But for all that it is a most agreeable one to follow hand-in-hand, winding as it does through the pleasant meadows of companion- ship. The view is rather limited, it is true, and homelike full of familiar things. There stand the kine, knee- deep in the grass; there runs the water; and there grows the corn. Also one can stop if one likes. By and by it grows different. By and by, when the travellers tread the heights of passion, precipices will yawn and torrents rush, lightning will fall and storms will blind; and who can know that they will attain at last to that far-off peak, crowned with the glory of a perfect peace which men call happiness? There are those who say it never can be reached, and that the halo which rests upon its JESS. 31 slopes is no earthly light, but rather, as it were, a promise and a beacon a glow reflected whence we know not, and lying on this alien earth as the sun's light lies on the dead bosom of the moon. Some say, again, that they have climbed its topmost pinnacle and tasted of the fresh breath of heaven that sweeps around its heights ay, and heard the quiring of immortal harps and the swaulike sigh of angels' wings; and then behold ! a mist has fallen upon them, and they have wandered in it, and when it cleared they were on the mountain paths again, and the peak was far away. And a few' there are who tell us that they live there always, listening to the voice of God; but these are old and worn with journeying men and women who have outlived passions and ambitions and the fire heats of love, and who now, girt about with memo- ries, stand face to face with the sphinx Eternity. But John Niel was no chicken, nor very likely to fall in love with the first pretty face he met. He had once, years ago, gone through that melancholy stage, and there, he thought, was an end of it. Another thing was that if Bessie attracted him, so did Jess in a different way. Be- fore he had been a week in the house he had come to the conclusion that Jess was the strangest woman he had ever met, and in her own way one of the most attractive. Her very impassiveness added to her charm; for who is there in this world who does not like to learn a secret? To him Jess was a riddle of which he did not know the key. That she was clever and well-informed he soon dis- covered from her rare remarks; that she could sing like an angel he also knew; but what was the mainspring of her mind round what axis did it revolve that was what puzzled him. Clearly enough it was not like most wom- en's, least of all like happy, healthy, plain-sailing Bessie's. So curious did he become to fathom these mysteries that he took every opportunity to associate with her, and would even, when he had time, go out with her on her 32 JESS. sketching, or rather flower - painting, expeditions. On these occasions she would sometimes begin to talk, but it was always about books, or England, or some intellectual question. She never spoke of herself. Yet it soon became evident to John that she liked his society, and missed him when he did not come. It never occurred to him what a boon it was to a girl of consider- able intellectual attainments, and still greater intellectual capacities and aspirations, to be thrown for the first time into the society of a cultivated and intelligent gentleman. John Niel was no empty - headed, one - sided individual. He had both read and thought, and even written a little, and in him Jess found a mind which, though of an infe- rior stamp, was more or less kindred to her own. Al- though he did not understand her, she understood him, and at last, had he but known it, there rose a far - off dawning light upon the twilight of her mind that thrilled and changed it as the first faint rays of morning thrill and change the darkness of the night. What if she should learn to love this man, and teach him to love her ? To most women such a thought involves more or less the idea of marriage, and that change of status which they generally consider so desirable. But Jess did not think much of that: what she did think of was the blessed possi- bility of being able to lay down her life, as it were, in the life of another of finding at last somebody who under- stood her and w r hom she could understand, who would cut the shackles that bound down the wings of her genius, so that she could rise and bear him with her as, in Bulwer Lytton's beautiful story, Zoe would have borne her lover. Here at last was a man who understood, who was something more than an animal, and who possessed the godlike gift of brains, the gift that had been more of a curse than a blessing to her, lifting her above the level of her sex and shutting her off as by iron doors from the understanding of those around her. Ah ! if only this perfect love of JESS. 33 which she had read so much would come to him and her, life might perhaps grow worth the living. It is a curious thing, but in such matters most men never learn wisdom from experience. A man of John Niel's age might have guessed that it is dangerous work playing with explosives, and that the quietest, most harm- less-looking substances are sometimes the most explosive. He might have known that to set to work to cultivate the society of a woman with such telltale eyes as Jess's was to run the risk of catching the fire from them himself, to say nothing of setting her alight; he might have known that to bring all the weight of his cultivated mind to bear on her mind, to take the deepest interest in her studies, to implore her to let him see the poetry Bessie told him she wrote, but which she would show to no living soul, and to evince the most evident delight in her singing, were one and all dangerous things to do; and yet he did them and thought no harm. As for Bessie, she was delighted that her sister should have found anybody whom she cared to talk to or who could understand her. It never occurred to her that Jess might fall in love. Jess was the last person in the world to fall in love. Nor did she calculate what the results might be to John. As yet, at any rate, she had no in- terest in Captain Niel of course not. And so things went on pleasantly enough to all con- cerned in this drama till one fine day, when the storm- clouds began to gather. John had been about the farm as usual till dinner-time, after which he took his gun and told Jantje to saddle up his shooting - pony. He was standing on the veranda, waiting for the pony to appear, and by him was Bessie, looking particularly attractive in a white dress, when suddenly he caught sight of Frank Muller's great black horse, and that gentleman himself upon it, cantering up the avenue of blue-gums. " Hullo, Miss Bessie," he said, " here comes your friend." 3 34 JESS. " Bother !" said Bessie, stamping her foot, and then, with a quick look, " Why do you call him my friend ?" " I imagine that he considers himself so, to judge from the number of times a week he com.es to see you," he answered, with a shrug. " At any rate, he isn't mine, so I am off shooting. Good-bye. I hope that you will enjoy yourself." " You are not kind," she said, in a low voice, and turn- ing her back on him. In another moment he was gone, and Frank Muller had arrived. " How do you do, Miss Bessie ?" he said, jumping from his horse with the rapidity of a man who had been ac- customed to rough riding all his life. "Where is the ' rooibaat je ' off to ?" " Captain Niel is going out shooting," she said, coldly. " Ah, so much the better for you and me, Miss Bessie ! We can have a pleasant talk. Where is that black mon- key, Jantje ? Here, Jantje, take my horse, you ugly devil, and mind you look after him, or I'll cut the liver out of you !" Jantje took the horse, with a forced grin of apprecia- tion at the joke, and led him off round the house. " I don't think that Jantje likes you, Meinheer Muller," said Bessie, spitefully, " and I don't wonder at it if you talk to him like that. He told me the other day that he had known you for twenty years," and she looked at him inquiringly. This casual remark produced a remarkable effect on her visitor, who turned color beneath his tanned skin. " He lies, the black hound," he said, " and I'll put a bullet through him if he says it again! What should I know about him, or he about me? Can I keep count of every miserable man-monkey I meet ?" and he muttered a string of Dutch oaths into his long beard. " Really, meinheer !" said Bessie. " Why do you always call me ' meinheer ' ?" he asked, JESS. 35 turning so fiercely on her that she started back a step. " I tell you I am not a Boer. I am an Englishman. My mother was English; and besides, thanks to Lord Carnar- von, we are all English now." " I don't see why you should mind being thought a Boer," she said, coolly; "there are some very good peo- ple among the Boers, and, besides, you used to be a great 'patriot.'" " Used to be yes; and so the trees used to bend to the north when the wind blew that way, but now they bend to the south, for the wind has turned. By and by it may set to the north again that is another matter then we shall see." Bessie made no answer, beyond pursing up her pretty mouth and slowly picking a leaf from the vine that trailed overhead. The big Dutchman took off his hat and stroked his beard perplexedly. Evidently he was meditating some- thing that he was afraid to say. Twice he fixed his cold eyes on Bessie's fair face, artd twice looked down again. The second time she took alarm. " Excuse me one minute," she said, and made as though to enter the house. " Wacht een beeche " (wait a bit), he ejaculated, break- ing into Dutch in his agitation, and even catching hold of her white dress with his big hand. She drew the dress from him with a quick twist of her lithe form, and turned and faced him. " I beg your pardon," she said, in a tone that could not be called encouraging; " you were going to say something." "Yes ah, that is I was going to say " and he paused. Bessie stood with a polite look of expectation on her face, and waited. " I was going to say that, in short, that I want to marry you !" 36 JESS. " Oh!" said Bessie, with a start. "Listen," he went on, hoarsely, his words gathering force as he proceeded, as is the way even with uncultured people when they speak from the heart. " Listen ! I love you, Bessie; I have loved you for three years. Every time I have seen you I have loved you more. Don't say me nay you don't know how I love you. I dream of you every night; sometimes I dream that I hear your dress rustling, and then you come and kiss me, and it is like being in heaven." Here Bessie made a gesture of disgust. "There, I have offended you, but don't be angry with me. I am very rich, Bessie; there is the place here, and then I have four farms in Lydenburg and ten thousand morgen up in Waterberg, and a thousand head of cattle, besides sheep and horses and money in the bank. You shall have everything your own way," he went on, seeing that the inventory of his goods did not appear to impress her "everything the house shall be English fash- ion; I will build a new sit-kame (sitting-room), and it shall be furnished from Natal. There, I love you, I say. You won't say no, will you ?" and he caught her by the hand. " I am very much obliged to you, Mr. Muller," answered Bessie, snatching away her hand; "but in short, I cannot marry you. No, it is no use, I cannot, indeed. There, please say no more, here comes my uncle. Forget all about it, Mr. Muller." Her suitor looked up ; there was old Silas Croft com- ing, sure enough, but he was some way off and walking slowly. " Do you mean it ?" he said, beneath his breath. " Yes, yes, of course I mean it. Why do you force me to repeat it ?" "It is that d d rooibaatje," he broke out. "You used not to be like this before. Curse him, the white-liv- JESS. 37 ered Englishman ! I will be even with him yet ; and I tell you what it is, Bessie ; you shall marry me, whether you like it or no. Look here, do you think I am the sort of man to play with ? You go to Wakkerstroom and aek what sort of a man Frank Muller is. See, I want yon I must have you. I could not live if I thought that I should never get you for myself. And I tell you I will do it. I don't care if it costs me my life, and your rooibaatje's too. I'll do it if I have to stir up a revolt against the govern- ment. There, I swear it by God or by the Devil, it's all one to me !" And growing inarticulate with passion, he stood there before her clinching and unclinching his great hand, and his lips trembling. Bessie was very frightened; but she was a brave woman, and rose to the occasion. " If you go on talking like that," she said, " I shall call my uncle. I tell you that I will not marry you, Frank Muller, and that nothing shall ever make me marry you. I am very sorry for you, but I have not encouraged you, and I will never many you never !" He stood for half a minute or so looking at her, and then burst into a savage laugh. " I think that some day or other I shall find a way to make you," he said, and, turning, went without another word. A couple of minutes later Bessie heard the sound of a horse galloping, and looking up saw her wooer's powerful form vanishing down the vista of blue-gums. Also she heard somebody crying out as though in pain at the back of the house, and, more to relieve her mind than anything else, went to see what it was. By the stable door she found the Hottentot Jantje, twisting round and round and shrieking and cursing, holding his hand to his side, from which the blood was running. " What is it ?" she asked. " Baas Frank !" he said " Baas Frank hit me with his whip !" 38 JESS. "The brute!" said Bessie, the tears starting into her eyes with anger. "Never mind, missie, never mind," said the Hottentot, his ugly face growing livid with fury, " it is only one more to me. I cut it on this stick" and he held up a long, thick stick he carried, on which were several notches, start- ing from three deep ones at the top just below the knob. " Let him look out sharp let him search the grass let him creep round the bush let him look as he will, one day he will find Jantje, and Jantje will find him !" "Why did Frank Muller gallop away like that?" asked her uncle of Bessie when she got back to the ve- randa. "We had some words," she answered, shortly, not see- ing the use of explaining matters to the old man. " Ah, indeed, indeed. Well, be careful, my love. It's ill to quarrel with a man like Frank Muller. I've known him for many years, and he has a black heart when he is crossed. You see, my love, you can deal with a Boer and you can deal with an Englishman, but cross-bred dogs are bad to handle. Take my advice, and make it up with Frank Muller." All of which sage advice did not tend to raise Bessie's spirits, which were already sufficiently low. CHAPTER V. DREAMS ARE FOOLISHNESS. WHEN John Niel left Bessie on the veranda at the ap- proach of Frank Muller he had taken his gun, and, having whistled to the pointer dog Pontac, mounted his shooting- pony and stalled out in quest of partridges. On the warm slopes of the hills round Wakkerstroom a large species of partridge is very abundant, especially in the patches of red grass in which they are sometimes clothed. It is a merry sound to hear these partridges calling from all directions just after daybreak, and one to make the heart of every true sportsman rejoice exceedingly. On leaving the house John proceeded up the side of the hill behind it his pony picking its way carefully between the stones, and the dog Pontac ranging about two or three hundred yards off, for in this sort of country it is necessary to have a dog with a wide range. Presently John saw him stop under a mimosa thorn and suddenly stiffen out as if he had been petrified, and made the best of his way towards him. Pontac stood still for a few seconds, and then slowly and deliberately veered his head round, as though it worked on a hinge, to see if his master were coming. John knew his ways. Three times would that remarkable old dog look round thus, and if the gun had not then arrived he would to a certainty run in and flush the birds. This was a rule that he never broke, for his patience had a fixed limit. On this occasion, however, John arrived before it was reached, and, jumping off his pony, cocked his gun and marched slowly up, full of happy expectation. On drew the dog, 40 JESS. his eye cold and fixed, saliva dropping from his mouth, and his head and face, on which was frozen an extraor- dinary expression of instinctive ferocity, outstretched to their utmost limit. He was right under the mimosa thorn now, and up to his belly in the warm, red grass. Where could the birds be ? Whirr! and a great feathered shell seemed to have burst at his very feet. What a covey ! twelve brace if there was a bird, and they had all been lying beak to beak in a space no bigger than a cartwheel. Up went John's gun and off too, a little sooner than it should have done. " Missed him clean ! Now then for the left barrel." Same result. There, we will draw a veil over the profanity that ensued. A minute later and it was all over, and John and Pontac were regarding each other with contempt and disgust. " It was all you, you brute," said John to Pontac. " I thought you were going to run in, and you hurried me." " Ugh !" said Pontac to John, or, at least, he looked it. " Ugh ! you disgusting bad shot. W T hat is the good of pointing for you ? It's enough to make a dog sick." The covey or rather the collection of old birds, for this kind of partridge sometimes "packs" just before the breeding season had scattered all about the place, and it was not long before Pontac found some of them ; and this time John got one bird and a beautiful great partridge he was too, with yellow legs and missed another. Again Pontac pointed, and a brace rose. Bang ! down goes one ; bang ! with the other barrel. Caught him, by Jove, just as he topped the stone. Hullo ! Pontac is still on the point. Slip in two more cartridges. Oh, a leash this time ! bang ! bang ! and down come a brace of them two brace of partridge without moving a yard. Life has joys for all men, but it has, I verily believe, no joy to compare to the joy of the moderate shot and earnest sportsman when he has just killed half a dozen driven JESS. 41 partridges without a miss, or ten rocketing pheasants with eleven cartridges, or, better still, a couple of woodcock right and left. Sweet to the politician are the cheers to announce the triumph of his cause and of himself ; sweet to the desponding writer is the unexpected public recogni- tion in the Saturday Review of talents with which nobody had previously been much impressed ; sweet to all men is the light of women's eyes and the touch of women's lips. But though he have experienced all these things, to the true sportsman and the moderate shot, sweeter far is it to see the arched wings of the driven bird, bent like Cupid's bow, come flashing fast towards him, to feel the touch of the stock as it fits itself against the shoulder, and the kind- ly give of the .trigger, and then, oh, thrilling sight ! to perceive the wonderful and yet awful change from life to death, the puff of feathers, and the hurtling passage of the dull mass borne onward by its own force to fall twenty yards from where the shot struck it. Next session the politician will be hooted down ; next year, perhaps, the Saturday Review will cut the happy writer to ribbons and decorate its columns with his fragments; next week you will have wearied of those sweet smiles, or, more likely still, they will be bestowed elsewhere. Vanity of vani- ties, my son, each and all of them ! But if you are a true sportsman (yes, even though you be but a moderate shot), it will always be a glorious thing to go out shooting, and when you chance to shoot well earth holds no such joy as that which shall glow in your honest breast (for all sports- men are honest), and it remains to be proved if Heaven does either. It is a grand sport, though the pity of it is that it should be such a cruel one. Such was the paean that John sang in his heart as he contemplated those fine partridges before lovingly trans- ferring them to his bag. But his luck to-day was not destined to stop at partridges, for hardly had he ridden over the edge of the bowlder-strewn side, and on to the 42 JESS. flat table-top of the hill, which consisted of some five hun- dred acres of land, before he perceived, emerging from the shelter of a tuft of grass about a hundred and seventy yards away, nothing less than the tall neck and whiskered head of a large " pauw," or bustard. Now it is quite useless to try to ride straight up to a bustard, and this he knew. The only thing to do is to ex- cite his curiosity and fix his attention by moving round and round him in an ever-narrowing circle. Putting his pony to a canter, John proceeded to do this with a heart beating with excitement. Round and round he went ; the "pauw" had vanished now; he was squatting in the tuft of grass. The last circle brought him to within seventy yards, and he did not dare risk it any more, so jumping off his pony he ran in towards the bird as hard as ever he could go. Before he had covered ten yards the " pauw " was rising, but they are heavy birds, and he was within forty yards before it was fairly on the wing. Then he pulled up and fired both barrels of No. 4 into it. Down it came, and, incautious man, he rushed forward in triumph without reloading his gun. Already was his hand out- stretched to seize the prize, when, behold ! the great wings stretched themselves out and the bird was flying away. John stood dancing upon the veldt, but observing that it settled within a couple of hundred yards, ran back, mounted his pony, and pursued it. When he got near it it rose again, and flew this time a hundred yards only, and so it went on till at last he got within gunshot of the king of birds and killed it. By this time he was right across the mountain-top, and on the brink of the most remarkable chasm he had ever seen. The place was known as Lion's Kloof, or Leuw Kloof in Dutch, because three lions had once been penned up by a party of Boers and shot there. The chasm or gorge was between a quarter and half a mile long, about six hundred feet in width, and a hundred and fifty to a JESS. 43 hundred and eighty feet deep. It evidently owed its ori- gin to the action of running water, for at its head, just to the right of where John Niel stood, a little stream welling from hidden springs in the flat mountain-top trickled from strata to strata, forming a series of crystal pools and tiny waterfalls, till at last it reached the bottom of the mighty gorge, and pursued its way, half hidden by the umbrella- topped mimosa and other thorns that were scattered about, through it to the plains beyond. Evidently this little stream was the parent of the gulf it flowed down and through, but how many centuries of patient, never-ceasing flow, wondered John Niel, must have been necessary to the vast result before him ? First centuries of saturation of the soil piled on and between the bed rocks that lay beneath it and jutted up through it, then centuries of floods caused by rain and perhaps by melting snows, to wash away the loosened mould ; then* centuries upon centuries more of flowing and of rainfalls to wash the debris clean and com- plete the colossal work. I say the rocks that jutted up through the soil, for the gulf was not clean cut. All along its sides, and here and there in its arena, stood up mighty columns or fingers of rock, not solid columns, but columns formed by huge bowlders piled mason fashion one upon another, as though the Titans of some dead age had employed themselves in building them up, overcoming their tendency to fall by the mere crushing weight above, that kept them steady even when the wild breath of the storms came howling down the gorge and tried its strength against them. About a hundred paces from the near end of the gorge, some ninety or more feet in height, stood the most remarkable of these mighty pillars, to which the remains at Stoneheuge are but toys. It was formed of seven huge bowlders, the largest, that at the bottom, about the size of a moderate cottage, and the smallest, that at the top, perhaps some eight or ten feet in diameter. These bowlders were rounded like a 44 JESS. cricket-ball evidently through the action of water and yet the hand of Nature had contrived to balance them, each one smaller than that beneath, the one upon the other, and to keep them so. But this was not always the case. For instance, a very similar mass that had risen on the near side of the perfect pillar had fallen, all except the two bot- tom stones, and the bowlders that went to form it lay scat- tered about like monstrous petrified cannon-balls. One of these had split in two, and seated on it John discovered none other than Jess Croft, apparently engaged in sketch- ing, looking very small and far off at the bottom of that vast chasm. John got off his shooting-pony, and looking about him perceived that it was possible to descend by following the course of the stream and clambering down the natural steps it had cut in the rocky bed. Throwing the reins over the pony's head, and leaving him with the dog Pontac to stand and look about him as South African shooting- ponies are accustomed to do, he put down his gun and game and proceeded to descend, pausing every now and again to admire the wild beauty of the scene and look at the hundred varieties of moss and ferns, the last mostly of the maiden-hair (capilla veneris) genus, that clothed every cranny and every rock where they could find roothold and get refreshment from the water or the spray of the cas- cades. As he drew near the bottom of the gorge he saw that near the borders of the stream, wherever the soil was moist, grew thousands upon thousands of white arum lilies, " pig lilies " they call them there, just now in full bloom. He had noticed these lilies from above, but there they had, owing to the distance, looked so small that he had taken them for everlastings or anemones. He could not see Jess now, for she was hidden by a bush that grows by the banks of the streams in South Africa in low-lying land, and which at certain seasons of the year is literally covered with masses of the most gorgeous scarlet bloom. His footsteps JESS. 45 fell very softly on the moss and flowers, and when he got round the glorious - looking bush it was evident that she had not heard him, for she was asleep. Her hat was off, but the bush shaded her, and her head had fallen forward over her sketching-block and rested on her hand. A ray of light that came through the bush played upon her curl- ing brown hair and threw warm shadows on her white face and the white wrist and hand on which it rested. John stood opposite to her and looked at her, and the old curiosity to understand this feminine enigma took pos- session of him. Many a man before him has been the victim of a like desire, and lived to regret that he did not leave it ungratified. It is not well to try and lift the cur- tain of the unseen; it is not well to call to heaven to show its glory, or to hell to give us touch and knowledge of its yawning fires. Knowledge comes soon enough ; many of us will say that knowledge has come too soon and left us desolate. There is no bitterness like the bitterness of wis- dom ; so cried the great Koholeth, and so hath cried many a son of man following blindly in his path. Let us be thankful for the dark places of the earth places where we may find rest and shadow, and the heavy sweetness of the night. Seek not after mysteries, O son of man ; be con- tent with the practical and the proved and the broad light of the day ; peep not, mutter not the words of awakening. Understand her who would be understood and is compre- hensible to those who run, and for the others let them be, lest your fate should be as the fate of Eve, and as the fate of Lucifer, star of the morning. For here and there there is a human heart from which it is not wise to draw the veil a heart in which many things slumber as undreamed dreams in the brain of the sleeper. Draw not the veil, whisper not the word of life in the silence where all things sleep, lest in that kindling breath of love and pain dim shapes arise, take form, and fright thee. A minute or so might have passed when suddenly, and 46 JESS. with a little start, Jess opened her great eyes, on which the shadow of darkness lay, and gazed at him. " Oh !" she said, with a little tremor, " is it you or is it my dream?" " Don't be afraid," he answered, cheerily, " it is I in the flesh." She covered her face with her hand for a moment, and then withdrew it, and he noticed that her eyes had changed curiously in that moment. They were still large and beau- tiful as they always were, but there was a change. Just now they had seemed as though her soul were looking through them. Doubtless it was because the pupils were enlarged by sleep. " Your dream ! What dream ?" he asked, laughing. "Never mind," she answered, in a quiet sort of way that excited his curiosity more than ever ; " dreams are fool- ishness." CHAPTER VI. THE STORM BREAKS. " Do you know you are a very odd person, Miss Jess," John said, presently, with a little laugh. " I don't think you can have a happy mind." She looked up. " A happy mind ?" she said. " Who can have a happy mind ? Nobody who can feel. Suppos- ing," she went on after a pause "supposing one puts one's self and one's own little interests and joys and sorrows quite away, how is it possible to be happy, when one feels the breath of human misery beating on one's face, and sees the great tide of sorrow and suffering creeping up to one's feet ? One may be on a rock one's self and out of the path of it, till the spring floods or the hurricane wave comes to sweep one away, or one may be afloat upon it ; whichever it is, it is quite impossible, if one has any heart, to be in- different to it." " Then only the indifferent are happy ?" " Yes, the indifferent and the selfish ; but, after all, it is the same thing ; indifference is the perfection of selfish- ness." " I am afraid that there must be lots of elfishness irt the world, for there is certainly plenty of happiness, all evil things notwithstanding. I should have said that happiness comes from goodness and from a sound diges- tion." Jess shook her head as she answered, " I may be wrong, but I don't see how anybody who feels can be quite happy in a world of sickness, suffering, slaughter, and death. I 48 JESS. saw a Kaffir woman die yesterday, and her children crying over her. She was a poor creature and had a rough lot, but she loved her life, and her children loved her. Who can be happy and thank God for his creation when he has just seen such a thing ? But there, Captain Niel, my ideas are very crude, and I dare say very wrong, and everybody has thought them before ; at any rate, I am not going to inflict them on you. What is the use of it ?" she went on with a laugh : " what is the use of anything ? The same old thoughts passing through the same human minds from year to year and century to century, just as the same clouds float across the same blue sky. The clouds are born in the sky, and the thoughts are born in the brain, and they both end in tears and re-arise in blinding, bewildering mist, and this is the beginning and end of thoughts and clouds. They arise out of the blue ; they overshadow and break into storms and tears, and then they are drawn up with the blue again, and the whole thing begins afresh." " So you don't think that one can be happy in the world ?" he asked. " I did not say that I never said that. I do think that happiness is possible. It is possible if one can love some- body so hard that one can quite forget one's self and every- thing else except that person, and it is possible if one can sacrifice one's self for others. There is no true happiness outside of love and self-sacrifice, or rather outside of love, for it includes the other. That is gold, all the rest is gilt." " How do you know that ?" he asked, quickly. " You have never been in love." " No," she answered, " I have never been in love like that, but all the happiness I have had in my life has come to me from loving. I believe that love is the secret of the world ; it is like the philosopher's stone they used to look for, and almost as hard to find, but when one finds it it turns everything to gold. Perhaps," she went on with a little laugh, " when the angels left the earth they left us love JESS. 49 behind, that by it and through it we may climb up to them again. It is the one thing that lifts us above the brutes. Without love man is a brute, and nothing but a brute; with love he draws near to God. When everything else falls away the love will endure because it cannot die while there is any life, if it is true love, for it is immortal. Only it must be true you see it must be true." He had got through her reserve now ; the ice of her manner broke up beneath the warmth of her words, and her usually impassive face had caught the life and light from the eyes above, and acquired a certain beauty of its own. He looked at it, and realized something of the un- taught and ill-regulated intensity and depth of the nature of this curious girl. He caught her eyes and they moved him strangely, though he was not an emotional man, and was too old to experience spasmodic thrills at the chance glances of a pretty woman. He went towards her, look- ing at her curiously. " It would be worth living to be loved like that," he said, more to himself than to her. She did not answer, but she let her eyes rest on his. Indeed, she did more, for she put all her soul into them and gazed and gazed till John Niel felt as though he were being mesmerized. And as she did so there rose up in her breast a knowledge that if she willed it she could gain this man's heart and hold it against all the world, for her nature was stronger than his nature, and her mind, untrained as it was, encompassed his mind and could pass over it and beat it down as the wind beats down a tossing sea. All this she learned in a moment, in the twinkling of an eye ; she did not know how she knew it, but she did know it as sure- ly as she knew that the blue sky stretched overhead, and, what is more, he for the moment, at any rate knew it too. It came on her as a shock and a revelation, like the tidings of a great joy or grief, and for a moment left her heart empty of all things else. 4 50 JESS. She dropped her eyes suddenly. " I think," she said, quietly, " that we have been talk- ing a great deal of nonsense, and that I want to finish my sketch." s He got up and left her, for he had to get home, saying as he did so that he thought there was a storm coming up, the air was so quiet, and the wind had fallen as it does be- fore an African tempest, and presently, on looking round, she saw him slowly climbing the precipitous ascent to the table-land above. It was a glorious afternoon, such as one sometimes gets in the African spring, although it was so intensely still. Everywhere were the proofs and evidences of life. The winter was over, and now, from the sadness and sterility of its withered age, sprang young and lovely summer, clad in sunshine, be-diamonded with dew, and fragrant with the breath of flowers. Jess lay back and looked up into the infinite depths above. How blue they were, and how measureless ! She could not see the angry clouds that lay like visible omens on the horizon. See there, miles above her, was one tiny circling speck. It was a vulture, watch- ing her from its airy heights and descending a little to see if she were dead or only sleeping. Involuntarily she shuddered. The bird of death re- minded her of Death himself also hanging high up there in the blue and waiting his opportunity to fall upon the sleeper. Then her eyes fell upon a bough of the glorious flowering bush under which she lay. It was not more than four feet above her head, but she was so still and motionless that a jewelled honey sucker came and hovered over the flowers, darting from one to another like a many- colored flash. Thence her glance travelled to the great column of bowlders that towered up above her and that seemed to say, " I am very old. I have seen many springs and many winters, and have looked down on many sleep- ing maids, and where are they now? All dead all dead," JESS. 51 and an old baboon in the rocks with startling suddenness barked out " all dead " in answer. Around her were the blooming lilies and the lustiness of springing life ; the heavy air was sweet with the odor of ferns and the mimosa flower. The running water splashed and musically fell ; the sunlight lay in golden bars athwart the shade, like the memory of happy days in the gray vista of a life ; away in the cliffs yonder, the rock-doves were preparing to nest by hundreds, and wak- ing the silence with their cooing and the flutter of their wings. Even the grim old eagle perched on the pinnacle of the rock was pruning himself, contentedly happy in the knowledge that his mate had laid an egg in that dark cor- ner of the cliff. Everything rejoiced and cried aloud that summer was at hand and that it was time to bloom and love and nest. Soon it would be winter again, when things died, and next summer other things would live under the sun, and they perchance would be forgotten. That was what they seemed to say. And as she lay and heard, her youthful blood, drawn by Nature's magnetic force, as the moon draws the tide, rose in her veins like the sap in the budding trees, and stirred her virginal serenity. All the bodily natural part of her caught the tones of Nature's happy voice that bade her break her bands, live and love, and be a woman. And lo! the spirit within her answered to it, and flung wide her bosom's doors, and of a sudden, as it were, something quickened and lived in her heart that was of her and yet had its own life a life apart ; something that sprang from her and another, and that would always be with her now and could never die ; and she rose pale and trembling, as a woman trembles at the first stirring of the child that she shall bear, and clung to the flowery bough of the beautiful bush above and then sank down again, feeling the spirit of her girlhood had departed from her, and that another angel had entered there ; knew that she loved with heart and soul and body, and was a very woman. 52 JESS. She had called to Love as the wretched call to Death, and Love had come in his strength and possessed her utter- ly ; and now for a little while she was afraid to pass into the shadow of his wings, as the wretched who call to Death fear him when they feel his icy fingers. But the fear passed, and the great joy and the new consciousness of power of identity that the inspiration of a true passion gives to some strong, deep natures remained, and after a while she prepared to make her way home across the moun- tain-top, feeling as though she were another woman. But still she did not go, but lay there with closed eyes and drank of this new, intoxicating wine. So absorbed was she that she did not notice that the birds had ceased to call, and that the eagle had fled away for shelter. She was not aware of the great and solemn hush that had taken the place of the merry voice of beast and bird, and pre- ceded the breaking of the gathered storm. At last as she rose to go she opened her dark eyes, which had been for the most part shut while this great change was passing over her, and with a natural impulse turned to look once more on the place where her happiness had found her, and then sank down again with a little exclamation. Where was the light and the glory and all the happiness of the life that moved and grew around her? Gone, and in its place darkness and the rising mist and deep and ominous shadows. As she lay and thought, the sun had sunk behind the hill and left the great gulf nearly dark, and, as is common in South Africa, the heavy storm-cloud had crept across the blue sky and sealed up the light from above. A drear wind came moaning up the gorge from the plains beyond ; the heavy rain-drops began to fall one by one ; the lightning flickered fitfully in the belly of the advancing cloud. The storrn that John had feared was upon her. Then came a'dreadful hush. Jess had recovered herself by now, and, knowing what to expect, snatched up her JESS. 53 sketching-block and hurried into the shelter of a little cave hollowed by water in the side of the cliff. And then with a rush of ice-cold air the tempest burst. Down came the rain in a sheet ; and then flash upon flash gleaming fiercely through the vapor - laden air, and roar upon roar echoing in the rocky cavities in volumes of fearful sound. Then another pause and space of utter silence, followed by a blaze of light that dazed and blinded her, and suddenly one of the piled-up columns to her left swayed to and fro like a poplar in a breeze, and fell headlong with a crash that almost mastered the awful crackling of the thunder overhead and the shrieking of the baboons scared from their crannies in the cliff. Down it came beneath the stroke of the fiery sword, the brave old pillar that had lasted out so many centuries, sending clouds of dust and fragments high up into the blinding rain, and carrying awe and wonder into the heart of the girl who watched its fall. Away rolled the storm as quickly as it had come, with a sound like the passing of the artillery of an embattled host, and then a gray rain set in, blotting out the outlines of everything, like an enduring, absorbing grief, dulling the edge and temper of a life. Through it Jess, scared and wet to the skin, managed to climb up the natural steps, now made almost impassable by the prevailing gloom and the rush of the water from the table-top of the mountain, and so on across the sodden plain, down the rocky path on the farther side, past the little walled -in cemetery with its four red-gums planted at its corners, in which a stranger who had died at Mooifontein lay buried, and so, just as the darkness of the wet night came down like a cloud, home at last. At the back door stood her old uncle with a lantern, " Is that you, Jess ?" he called out in his stentorian tones. "Lord! what a sight!" as she emerged, her sod- den dress clinging to her slight form, her hands bleeding with clambering over the rocks, her curling hair, which 64 JESS. had broken loose, hanging down her back and half cover- ing her face. "Lord, what a sight!" he ejaculated, again. "Why, Jess, where have you been ? Captain Niel has gone out to look for you with the Kaffirs." " I have been sketching in Leuw Kloof, and got caught in the storm. There, uncle, let me pass, I wan* to get these wet things off. It is a bitter night," and off she ran to her room, leaving a long trail of water behind her as she passed. The old man entered the house, shut the door, and blew out the lantern. " Now, what is it she reminds me of ?" he said aloud as he groped his way down the passage to the sitting-room. " Ah, I know; that night when she first came here out of the rain leading Bessie by the hand. What can the girl have been thinking of, not to see the thunder coming up ? She ought to know the signs of the weather here by now. Dreaming, I suppose, dreaming. She's an odd woman, Jess, very." Perhaps he did not quite know how accu- rate his guess was, and how true the conclusion he drew from it. Certainly she had been dreaming, and she was an odd woman. Meanwhile Jess was rapidly changing her clothes and removing the traces of her struggle with the elements. But of that other struggle that she had gone through she could not remove the traces. They and the love that arose from it would endure as long as she endured. It was her former self that had been cast off in it and that now lay behind her, an empty and meaningless thing like the shape- less pile of garments. It was all very strange. So he had gone to look for her, and had not found her. She was glad that he had gone. It made her happy to think of him searching and calling in the wet and the night. She was only a woman, and it was natural that she should feel thus. By and by he would come back and find her clothed and in her right mind and ready to greet him. JESS. 55 She was glad that he had not seen her, wet, dishevelled, and shapeless. A woman looks so unpleasant like that. It might have turned him against her. Men like women to look nice and clean and pretty. That gave her an idea. She turned to her glass and, holding the light above her head, studied her own face attentively in it. She was a woman with as little vanity in her composition as it is possible for a woman to have, and she had not till now given her personal looks much consideration. They had not been of great importance to her in the Wakker- Btroom district of the Transvaal. But now all of a sudden they became very important; and so she stood and looked at her own wonderful eyes, at the masses of curling brown hair still damp and shining from the rain, at the curious pallid face and the clear-cut, determined mouth. " If it were not for my eyes and hair, I should be very ugly," she said to herself aloud. " If only I were beauti- ful like Bessie, now." The thought of her sister gave her another idea. What if he were to prefer Bessie ? Now she thought of it, he had been very attentive to Bessie. A feeling of dreadful doubt and jealousy passed through her, for women like Jess know what jealousy is in its pain. Supposing that it was all in vain ; supposing that what she had to-day given given with both hands once and for all, so that she could not take it back, had been given to a man who loved another woman, and that woman her own dear sister ? Supposing that the fate of her love was to be like water falling unalteringly on the hard rock that heeds it not and retains it not. True, the water wears the rock away ; but could she be satisfied with that ? She could master him, she knew; even if things were so, she could win him to herself, she had read it in his eyes that afternoon; but could she, who had promised her dead mother to cherish and protect her sister, whom till this afternoon she had loved better than anything in the world, and whom she still loved more dearly than her life could she, if it should happen to be thus, rob that sister 56 JESS. of her lover ? And if it should be so, what would her life be like ? It would be like the great pillar after the light- ning had smitten it, a pile of scattered, smoking fragments, a very heaped-up dbbris of a life. She could feel it even now. No wonder she sat there upon the little white bed hold- ing her hand against her heart and feeling terribly afraid. Just then she heard John's footstep in the hall. " I can't find her," he said, in an anxious tone, to some one as she rose, taking her candle with her, and left the room. The light from the candle fell full upon his face and dripping clothes. It was white and anxious, and she was glad to see the anxiety. " Oh, thank God! here you are!" he said, catching her hand. "I began to think you were quite lost. I have been right down the Kloof after you, and got a nasty fall over it." " It is very good of you," she said, in a low voice, and again their eyes met, and again the glance thrilled him. There was such a wonderful light in Jess's eyes that night. Half an hour afterwards they sat down as usual to sup- per. Bessie did not put in an appearance till it was a quarter over, and then sat very silent through it. Jess narrated her adventure in the Kloof, and everybody lis- tened, but nobody said much. There was a sort of shadow over the house that evening, or perhaps it was that each of the party was thinking of his own affairs. After sup- per old Silas Croft began talking about the political state of the country, which gave him uneasiness. He said that he believed the Boers really meant to rebel against the government this time. Frank Muller had told him so, and he always knew what was going on. This announce- ment did not tend to raise anybody's spirits, and the even- ing passed as silently as the meal had done. At last Bes- sie got up, stretched her rounded arms, and said that she was tired and going to bed. " Come into my room," she whispered to her sister as she passed. "I want to speak to you." CHAPTER VII. LOVE'S YOUNG DREAM. AFTER waiting a few minutes, Jess said " Good-night," and went straight to Bessie's room. Her sister had un- dressed, and was sitting on her bed, wrapped in a blue dressing-gown that suited her fair complexion admirably, and with a very desponding expression on her beautiful face. Bessie was one of those people who are easily elated and easily cast down. Jess came up to her and kissed her. "What is it, love?" she said. Her sister would never have divined the gnawing anxiety that was eating at her heart as she said it. " Oh, Jess, I'm so glad that you have come. I do so want you to advise me that is, to tell me what you think," and she paused. " You must tell me what it is all about first, Bessie dear," she said, sitting down opposite to her in such a po- sition that her face was shaded from the light. Bessie tapped her naked foot against the matting with which the little room was carpeted. It was an exceedingly pretty foot. " Well, dear old girl, it is just this Frank Muller has been heje to ask me to marry him." " Ob," said Jess, with a sigh of relief, " so that was all ?" She felt as though a ton-weight had been lifted from her heart. She had expected that bit of news for some time. " He wanted me to marry him, and when I said I would not, he behaved like like " 58 JESS. " Like a Boer," suggested Jess. " Like a brute," went on Bessie, with emphasis. " So you don't like Frank Muller ?" "Like him ! I loathe the man. You don't know how I loathe him, with his handsome, bad face and his cruel eyes. I always loathed him, and now I hate him too. But I will tell you all about it;" and she did, with many feminine comments and interpolations. Jess sat quite still, and waited till she had finished. " Well, dear," she said, at last, " you are not going to marry him, and so there is an end of it. You can't de- test the man more than I do. I have watched him for years," she went on, with rising anger, " and I tell you that Frank Muller is a liar and a traitor. That man would betray his own father if he thought it to his in- terest to do so. He hates uncle I am sure he does, al- though he pretends to be so fond of him. I am sure that he has tried often and often to stir up the Boers against him. Old Hans Coetzee told me that he denounced him to the Veld-Cornet as an ' uitlander ' and a ' verdomde Engelsmann ' about two years before the annexation, and tried to get him to persuade the Landdrost to report him as a law-breaker to the Raad; while all the time he was pretending to be so friendly. Then in the Sikukuni war it was Frank Muller who caused them to commandeer un- cle's two best wagons and the spans. He gave none himself, nothing but a couple of bags of meal. He is a wicked fellow, Bessie, and a dangerous fellow; but he has more brains and more power about him than any man in the Transvaal, and you will have to be very careful, or he will do us all a bad turn." " Ah !" said Bessie; "well, he can't do much now that the country is English." " I am not so sure of that. I am not so sure that the country is going to stop English. You laugh at me for reading the home papers, but I see things there that make JESS. 59 me doubtful. The other people are in power now in Eng- land, and one does not know what they may do ; you heard what uncle said to-night. They might give us up to the Boers. You must remember that we far-away people are only the counters with which they play their game." " Nonsense, Jess," said Bessie, indignantly. " English- men are not like that. When they say a thing, they stick to it." " They used to, you mean," answered Jess with a shrug, and got up from her chair to go to bed. Bessie began to fidget her white feet over one another. " Stop a bit, Jess dear," she said. " I want to speak to you about something else." Jess sat or rather dropped back into her chair, and her pale face turned paler than ever ; but Bessie blushed rosy- red and hesitated. " It is about Captain Niel," she said, at length. " Oh," answered Jess, with a little laugh, and her voice sounded cold and strange in her own ears. " Has he been following Frank Muller's example, and proposing to you too ?" " No-o," said Bessie, " but " and here she rose and, sit- ting on a stool by her elder sister's chair, rested her fore- head against her knee "but I love him, and I believe that he loves me. This morning he told me that I was the prettiest woman he had seen at home or abroad, and the sweetest, too; and do you know," she said, looking up and giving a happy little laugh, "I think he meant it, too." "Are you joking, Bessie, or are you really in earnest?" " In earnest ! ah, but that I am, and I am not ashamed to say it. I fell in love with John Niel when he killed that cock ostrich. He looked so strong and savage as he fought with it. It is a fine thing to see a man put out all liis strength. And then he is such a gentleman! so dif- ferent from the men we see round here. Oh, yes, I fell in 60 JESS. love with him at once, and I have got deeper and deeper in love with him ever since, and if he does not marry me I think that it will break my heart. There, that's the truth, Jess dear," and she dropped her golden head on to her sister's knees and began to cry, softly, at the thought. And the sister sat there on the chair, her hand hanging idly by her side, her white face set and impassive as that of an Egyptian sphinx, and the large eyes gazing far away through the window, against which the rain was beating far away out into the night and the storm. She heard the surging of the storm, she heard her sister's weeping, her eyes perceived the dark square of the window through which they appeared to look, she could feel Bessie's head upon her knee yes, she could see and hear and feel, and yet it seemed to her that she was dead. The lightning had fallen on her soul as it fell on the pillar of rock, and it was as the pillar was. And it had fallen so soon ! there had been such a little span of happiness and hope ! And so she sat, like a stony sphinx, and Bessie wept softly be- fore her, like a beautiful, breathing, loving human sup- pliant, and the two formed a picture and a contrast such as the student of human nature does not often get the chance of seeing. It was the elder sister who spoke first after all. " Well, dear," she said, " what are you crying about ? You love Captain Niel, and you believe that he loves you. Surely this is nothing to cry about." " Well, I don't know that it is," said Bessie more cheer- fully; "but I was thinking how dreadful it would be if I lost him." " I don't think that you need be afraid," said Jess ; " and now, dear, I really must go to bed, I am so tired. Good-night, my dear ; God bless you ! I think that you have made a very wise choice. Captain Niel is a man whom any woman might love, and be proud of loving." In another minute she was in her room, and there her JESS. 61 composure left her, for she was but a loving woman after all. She flung herself upon her bed, and, hiding her face in the pillow, burst into a paroxysm of weeping a very different thing from Bessie's gentle tears. Her grief ab- solutely convulsed her, and she pushed the bed-clothes against her mouth to prevent the sound of it penetrating the partition wall and reaching John Niel's ears, for his room was next to hers. Even in the midst of her suffer- ing the thought of the irony of the thing forced itself into her mind. There, separated from, her only by a few inches of lath and plaster and some four or five feet of space, was the man for whom she mourned thus, and yet he was as ignorant of it as though he were thousands of miles away. Sometimes, at such acute crises in our lives, the limitations of our physical nature do strike us in this sort of way. It is strange to be so near and yet so far, and it brings the absolute and utter loneliness of every created being home to the mind in a manner that is forci- ble and at times almost terrible. John Niel going com- posedly to sleep, his mind happy with the recollection of those two right and left shots, and Jess lying on her bed, six feet away, and sobbing out her stormy heart over him, are after all but types of what is continually going on in this remarkable world. How often do we understand one another's grief ? and, when we do, by what standard can we measure it ? More especially is comprehension rare if we happen to be the original cause of the trouble. Do we think of the feelings of the beetles it is our painful duty to crush into nothingness ? Not at all. If we have any compxmctions, they are quickly absorbed in the pride of our capture. And more often still, as in the present case, we set our foot upon the poor victim by pure accident or venial carelessness. Presently he was fast asleep, and she, her paroxysm past, was walking up and down, down and up, her little room, her bare feet falling noiselessly on the carpeting as 62 JESS. she strove to wear out the first bitterness of her woe. Oh, that it lay in her power to recall the past few days ! Oh, that she had never seen his face, that must now be ever before her eyes ! But for her there was no such possibility, and she felt it. She knew her own nature well. Her heart had spoken, and the word it said must roll on continually through the spaces of her mind. Who can recall the spoken word, and who can set a limit to its echoes ? It is not so with all women, but here and there may be found a nature where it is so. Spirits like this poor girl's are too deep, and partake too much of a divine immutability, to shift and suit themselves to the changing circumstances of a fickle world. They have no middle course ; they cannot halt half-way ; they set all their fortune on a throw. And when the throw is lost, their hearts are broken, and their happiness passes away like a swallow. For in such a nature love rises like the wind on the quiet breast of some far sea. None can say whence it comes or whither it blows ; but there it is, lashing the waters to a storm, so that they roll in thunder all the long day through, throwing their white arms on high, as they clasp at the evasive air, till the darkness that is death comes down and covers them. What is the interpretation of it ? Why does the great wind stir the deep waters ? It does not ripple the shallow pool as it passes, for shallowness can but ripple and throw up shadows. We cannot tell, but this we know that deep things only can be deeply moved. It is the penalty of depth and greatness ; it is the price they pay for the divine privilege of suffering and sympathy. The shallow pools, the looking-glasses of our little life, know nought, feel nought. Poor things! they can but ripple and reflect. But the deep sea, in its torture, may perchance catch some echo of God's voice sounding down the driving gale ; and, as it lifts itself and tosses up its waves in agony, may per- ceive a glow, flowing from a celestial sky that is set beyond the horizon that bounds its being. JESS. 63 Suffering, mental suffering, is a prerogative of greatness, and even here there lies an exquisite joy at its core. For everything has its compensations. Nerves such as these can thrill with a high happiness that will sweep unfelt over the mass of men. Thus he who is stricken with grief at the sight of the world's misery as all great and good men must be is at times lifted up with joy by catching some faint gleam of the almighty purpose that underlies it all. So it was with the Son of Man in his darkest hours; the Spirit that enabled him to compass out the measure of the world's suffering and sin enabled him also, knowing their purposes, to gaze beyond them; and thus it is, too, with those deep-hearted children of his race, who partake, however dimly, of his divinity. And so, even in this hour of her darkest bitterness and grief, a gleam of comfort struggled to Jess's breast just as the first ray of dawn was struggling through the stormy night. She would sacrifice herself to her sister that she had determined on; and hence came that cold gleam of happiness, for there is happiness in self-sacrifice, whatever the cynical may say. At first her woman's nature had risen in rebellion against the thought. Why should she throw her life away? She had as good a right to him as Bessie, and she knew that by the strength of her own hand she could hold him against Bessie in all her beauty, however far things had gone between them; and she believed, as a jealous woman is prone to do, that they had gone much farther than they had. But by and by, as she pursued that weary march, her better self rose up and mastered the promptings of her heart. Bessie loved him, and Bessie was weaker than she, and less suited to bear pain, and she had sworn to her dy- ing mother for Bessie had been her mother's darling to promote her happiness and, come what would, to comfort and protect her by every means in her power. It was a wide oath, and she was only a child when she took it, but 64 JESS. it bound her conscience none the less, and surely it covered this. Besides, she dearly loved her far, far more than she loved herself. No, Bessie should have her lover, and she should never know what it had cost her to give him up ; and as for herself, well, she must go away like a wounded buck, and hide till she got well or died. She laughed a drear little laugh, and went and brushed her hair just as the broad lights of the dawn came stream- ing across the misty veldt. But she did not look at her face again in the glass; she cared no more about it now. Then she threw herself down to sleep the sleep of utter exhaustion before it was time to go out again and face the world and her new sorrow. Poor Jess! Love's young dream had not overshadowed her for long. It had tarried just three hours. But it had left other dreams behind. " Uncle," said Jess that morning to old Silas Croft as he stood by the kraal-gate, where he had been counting out the sheep an operation requiring great quickness of eye, and on the accurate performance of which he greatly prided himself. " Yes, yes, my dear, I know what you are going to say. It was very neatly done; it isn't everybody who can count out six hundred running hungry sheep without a mistake. But, then, I oughtn't to say too much, for you see I have been at it for fifty years, in the Old Colony and here. Now, many a man would get fifty sheep wrong. There's Niel now " " Uncle," said she, wincing a little at the name, as a horse with a sore back winces at the touch of the saddle, "it wasn't about the sheep that I was going to speak to you. . I want you to do me a favor." "A favor? Why, God bless the girl, how pale you look! not but what you are always pale. Well, what is it now ?" JESS. 65 " I want to go up to Pretoria by the post-cart that leaves Wakkerstroom to-morrow afternoon, and to stop for a couple of months with my schoolfellow, Jane Neville. I have often promised to go, and I have never gone." " Well, I never!" said the old man. "My stay-at-home Jess wanting to go away, and without Bessie, too! What is the matter with you ?" " I want a change, uncle I do indeed. I hope you won't thwart me in this." Her uncle looked at her steadily with his keen gray eyes. "Humph!" he said; " you want to go away, and there's an end of it. Best not ask too many questions where a maid is concerned. Very well, my dear, go if you like, though I shall miss you." " Thank you, uncle," she said, and kissed him, and then turned and went. Old Croft took off his broad hat and polished his bald head with a red pocket-handkerchief. " There's something up with that girl," he said aloud to a lizard that had crept out of the crevices of the stone wall to bask in the sun. " I am not such a fool as I look, and I say that there is something wrong with her. She is odder than ever," and he hit viciously at the lizard with his stick, whereon it promptly bolted into its crack, returning pres- ently to see if the irate " human " had departed. " However," he soliloquized, as he made his way up to the house, " I am glad that it was not Bessie. I couldn't bear, at my time of life, to part with Bessie even for a couple of months." 5 CHAPTER VIII. JESS GOES TO PEETOEIA. THAT day, at dinner, Jess suddenly announced that she was going on the morrow to Pretoria to see Jane Neville. " To see Jane Neville !" said Bessie, opening her blue eyes wide. " Why, it was only last month you said that you did not care about Jane Neville now, because she had grown so vulgar. Don't you remember when she stopped here on her way down to Natal last year, and held up her fat hands, and said, 'Ah, Jess Jess is a genius! It is a privilege to know her.' And then she wanted you to quote Shakespeare to that lump of a brother of hers, and you told her that if she did not hold her tongue she would not enjoy the privilege much longer. And now you want to go and stop with her for two months! Well, Jess, you are odd. And, what's more, I think it is very unkind of you to go away for so long." To all of which prattle Jess said nothing, but merely re- iterated her determination to go. John, too, was astonished and, to tell the truth, not a little disgusted. Since the previous day, when he had that talk with her in Lion Kloof, Jess had assumed a clearer and more definite interest in his eyes. Before that she had been an enigma; now he had guessed enough about her to make him anxious to know more. Indeed, he had not per- haps realized how strong and definite his interest was till he heard that she was going away for a long period. Sud- denly it struck him that the farm would be very dull with- out this interesting woman moving about the place in her JESS. 67 silent, resolute kind of way. Bessie was, no doubt, delight- ful and charming to look on, but she had not got her sister's brains and originality; and John Niel was sufficiently above the ordinary run to thoroughly appreciate intellect and orig- inality in a woman, instead of standing aghast at it. She interested him intensely, to say the least of it, and, man- like, he felt exceedingly put out, and even sulky, at the idea of her departure. He looked at her in remonstrance, and even, in awkwardness begotten of his irritation, knocked down the vinegar cruet and made a mess upon the table; but she evaded his eyes and took no notice of the vinegar. Then, feeling that he had done all that in him lay, he went to see about the ostriches; first of all hanging about a little to see if Jess would come out, which she did not. Indeed, he saw nothing more of her till sup- per-time. Bessie told him that she said she was busy packing ; but, as one can only take twenty pounds' weight of luggage in a post-cart, this did not quite convince him that it was so in fact. At supper she was, if possible, even more quiet than she had been at dinner. After it was over he asked her to sing, but she declined, saying that she had given up singing for the present, and persisting in her statement in spite of the chorus of remonstrance it aroused. The birds only sing while they are mating; and it is, by the way, a curious thing, and suggestive of the theory that the same great principles pervade all nature, that Jess, now that her trouble had overtaken her, and that she had lost her love which had suddenly sprung from her heart full-grown and clad in power as Athena sprang from the head of Jove had no further inclination to use her divine gift of song. It probably was nothing more than a coincidence, but it was a curious one. The arrangement was, that on the morrow Jess was to be driven in the Cape cart to Martinus-Wesselstroom, more commonly called Wakkerstroom, and there catch the post- 68 JESS. cart, which was timed to leave the town at midday, though when it would leave was quite another matter. Post-carts are not particular to a day or so in the Transvaal. Old Silas Croft w r as going to drive her with Bessie, who had some shopping to do in Wakkerstroom, as ladies some- times have; but at the last moment the old man got a pre- monitory twinge of the rheumatism, to which he was a martyr, and could not go; so, of course, John volunteered, and, though Jess raised some difficulties, Bessie furthered the idea, and in the end his offer was accepted. Accordingly at half -past eight on a beautiful morning up came the tented cart, with its two massive wheels, stout Btinkwood disselboom, and four spirited young horses; to the head of which the Hottentot Jantje, assisted by the Zulu Mouti, clad in the sweet simplicity of a moocha, a few feathers in his wool, and a horn snuff-box stuck through the fleshy part of the ear, hung grimly on. In they got John first, then Bessie next to him, then Jess. Next Jantje scrambled up behind; and after some preliminary backing and plunging, and showing a disposition to twine themselves affectionately round the orange-trees, off went the horses at a hand gallop, and away swung the cart after them, in a fashion that would have frightened anybody not accustomed to that mode of progression pretty well out of his wits. As it was, John had as much as he could do to keep the four horses together and to prevent them from bolting, and this alone, to say nothing of the rattling and jolting of the vehicle over the uneven track, was suf- ficient to put a stop to any attempt at conversation. Wakkerstroom was about eighteen miles from Mooifon- tein, a distance that they covered well within the two hours. Here the horses were outspanned at the hotel, and John went into the house whence the post-cart was to start and booked Jess's seat, and then joined the ladies at the " Kan- toor," or store where they were shopping. After the shop- ping was done they went back to the inn together and had JESS. 69 some dinner; by which time the Hottentot driver of the cart began to tune up lustily, but unmelodiously, on a bugle to inform intending passengers that it was time to start. Bessie was out of the room at the moment, and, with the exception of a peculiarly dirty - looking coolie waiter, there was nobody about. " How long are you going to be away, Miss Jess ?" asked John. " Two months more or less, Captain Niel." " I am very sorry that you are going," he said, earnestly. " It will be very dull at the farm without you." " There will be Bessie for you to talk to," she answered, turning her face to the window, and affecting to watch the inspanning of the post-cart in the yard on which it looked. " Captain Niel!" she said, suddenly. "Yes?" " Mind you look after Bessie while I am away. Listen! I am going to tell you something. You know Frank Muller?" " Yes, I know him, and a very disagreeable fellow he is." " Well, he threatened Bessie the other day, and he is a man who is quite capable of carrying out a threat. I can't tell you anything more about it, but I want you to promise me to protect Bessie if any occasion for it should arise. I do not know that it will, but it might. Will you promise ?" " Of course I will ; I would do a great deal more than that if you asked me to, Jess," he answered, tenderly, for now that she was going away he felt curiously drawn tow- ards her, and was anxious to show it. "Never mind me," she said, with an impatient little movement. "Bessie is sweet enough and lovely enough to be looked after for her own sake, I should think." Before he could say any more, in came Bessie herself, saying that the driver was waiting, and they went out to eee her sister off. 70 JESS. "Don't forget your promise," Jess whispered to him, bending down, as he helped her into the cart, so low that her lips almost touched him and her breath rested for a second on his cheek like the ghost of a kiss. In another moment the sisters had embraced each other, tenderly enough ; the driver had sounded once more on his awful bugle, and away went the cart at full gallop, bear- ing with it Jess, two other passengers, and her majesty's mails. John and Bessie stood for a moment watching its mad career, as it went splashing and banging down the straggling street towards the wide plains beyond, and then turned to enter the inn again and prepare for their home- ward drive. As they did so, an old Boer, named Hans Coetzee, with whom John was already slightly acquainted, came up, and, extending an enormously big and thick hand, bid them " Gooden daag." Hans Coetzee was a very fa- vorable specimen of the better sort of Boer, and really came more or less up to the ideal picture that is so often drawn of that " simple pastoral people." He was a very large, stout man, with a fine open face and a pair of kindly eyes. John, looking at him, guessed that he could not weigh less than seventeen stone, and he was well within the mark at that. " How are you, Captein ?" he said in English, for he could talk English well, " and how do you like the Trans- vaal ? must not call it South African Republic now, you know, for that's treason," and his eye twinkled merrily. " I like it very much, meinheer," said John. " Ah, yes, it's a beautiful veldt, especially about here no horse sickness, no ' blue tongue,' * and a good strong grass for the cattle. And you must find yourself very snug at Om (Uncle) Croft's there; it's the nicest place in the district, with the ostriches and all. Not that I hold with ostriches in this veldt; they are well enough in the * A disease that is very fatal to sheep. JESS. 71 Old Colony, but they won't breed here at least, not as they should do. I tried them once and I know; oh, yes, I know." "Yes, it's a very fine country, meinheer. I have been all over the world almost, and I never saw a finer." "You don't say so, now! Almighty, what a thing it is to have travelled! Not that I should like to travel myself. I think that the Lord meant us to stop in the place he has made for us. But it is a fine country, and " (dropping his voice) "I think it is a finer country than it used to be." " You mean that the veldt has got ' tame,' meinheer." "Nay, nay. I mean that the land is English now," he answered, mysteriously, " and though I dare not say so among my volk, I hope that it will keep English. When I was Republican, I was Republican, and it was good in some ways, the republic. There was so little to pay in taxes, and we knew how to manage the black volk; but now I am English, I am English. I know the English gov- ernment means good money and safety, and if there isn't a Raad (assembly) now, well, what does it matter? Al- mighty, how they used to talk there! clack, clack, clack! just like an old black koran (species of bustard) at sunset. And where did they run the wagon of the republic to- Burgers and those d d Hollanders of his, and the rest of them? Why, into the sluit into a sluit with peaty banks; and there it would have stopped till now, or till the flood came down and swept it away, if old Shepstone ah ! what a tongue that man has, and how fond he is of the kinderchies! (little children) had not come and pulled it out again. But look here, captein, the volk round here don't think like that. It's the ' verdomde Britische Gouv- ernment ' here and the ' verdomde Britische Gouvernment ' there, and ' bymakaars ' (meetings) here and * bymakaars ' there. Silly volk, they all run one after the other like sheep. But there it is, captein, and I tell you there will be fighting before long, and then our people will shoot 72 JESS. those poor rooibaatjes (red jackets) of yours like buck and take the land back. Poor things! I could weep when I think of it." John smiled at this melancholy prognostication, and was about to explain what a poor show all the Boers in the Transvaal would make in front of a few British regi- ments, when he was astonished by a sudden change in his friend's manner. Dropping his enormous paw on to his shoulder, Coetzee broke into a burst of somewhat forced merriment, the cause of which was, though John did not guess it at the moment, that he had just perceived Frank Muller, who was in Wakkerstroom with a wagon - load of corn to grind at the mill, standing within five yards, and apparently intensely interested in flipping at the flies with a cowrie made of the tail of a vilderbeeste, but in re- ality listening to Coetzee's talk with all his ears. "Ha, ha ! 'nef'" (nephew), said old Coetzee to the as- tonished John, " no wonder you like Mooifontein there are other mooi (pretty) things there besides the water. How often do you opsit (sit up at night) with Uncle Croft's pretty girl, eh ? I'm not quite as blind as an ant- bear yet. I saw her blush when you spoke to her just now. I saw her. Well, well, it is a pretty game for a young man, isn't it, ' nef ' Frank ?" (this was addressed to Muller). " I'll be bound the captein here * burns a long candle' with pretty Bessie every night eh, Frank? I hope you ain't jealous, ' nef ' ? my vrouw told me some time ago that you were sweet in that direction yourself;" and he stopped at last, out of breath, and looked anxiously towards Muller for an answer, while John, who had been somewhat overwhelmed at this flow of bucolic chaff, gave a sigh of relief. As for Muller, he behaved in a curious manner. Instead of laughing, as the jolly old Boer had intended that he should, he had, although Coetzee could not see it, been turning blacker and blacker; and now that the flow of language ceased, he, with a savage ejaculation JESS. 73 which John could not catch, but which he appeared to throw at his (John's) head, turned on his heel and went off towards the courtyard of the inn. " Almighty!" said old Hans, wiping his face with a red cotton pocket-handkerchief; " I have put my foot into a big hole. That stink-cat Muller heard all that I was say- ing to you, and I tell you he will save it up and save it up, and one day he will bring it all out to the volk and call me a traitor to the ' land ' and ruin me. I know him. He knows how to balance a long stick on his little finger so that the ends keep even. Oh, yes, he can ride two horses at once, and blow hot and blow cold. He is a devil of a man, a devil of a man ! And what did he mean by swearing at you like that? Is it about the missie, (girl), I wonder? Almighty ! who can say? Ah ! that re- minds me though I'm sure I don't know why it should the Kaffirs tell me that there is a big herd of buck vilderbeeste and blesbok on my outlying place about an hour and a half (ten miles) from Mooifontein. Can you hold a rifle, captein ? You look like a bit of a hunter." "Oh, yes, meinheer!" said John, delighted at the pros- pect of some shooting. " Ah, I thought so. All you English are sportsmen, though you don't know how to kill buck. Well, now, you take Om Croft's light Scotch cart and two good horses, and come over to my place not to-morrow, for my wife's cousin is coming to see us, and an old cat she is, but rich ; she had a thousand pounds in gold in the wag- on-box under her bed nor the next day, for it is the Lord's day, and one can't shoot creatures on the Lord's day but Monday, yes, Monday. You be there by eight o'clock, and you shall see how to kill vilderbeeste. Al- mighty ! now what can that jackal Frank Muller have meant ? Ah ! he is the devil of a man," and, shaking his head ponderously, the jolly old Boer departed, and 74 JESS. presently John saw him riding away upon a fat little shooting-pony that cannot have weighed much more than himself, and that yet cantered away with him on his fifteen -mile journey as though he were but a feather- weight. CHAPTER IX. 's STOEY. SHORTLY after the old Boer had gone, John went into the yard of the hotel to see to the inspanning of the Cape cart, when his attention was at once arrested by the sight of a row in active progress at least, from the crowd of Kaffirs and idlers and the angry sounds and curses that proceeded from them, he judged that it was a row. Nor was he wrong about it. In the corner of the yard, close by the stable-door, surrounded by the aforesaid crowd, stood Frank Muller; a heavy sjambock in his raised hand above his head, as though in the act to strike. Before him, a very picture of drunken fury, his lips drawn up like a snarling dog's, so that the two lines of his white teeth gleamed like polished ivory in the sunlight, his small eyes all shot with blood, and his face working convulsively, was the Hottentot Jantje. Nor was this all. Across his face was a blue wheal where the whip had fallen, and in his hand a heavy white - handled knife which he always carried. " Hullo ! what is all this ?" said John, shouldering his way through the crowd. "The swartsel (black creature) has stolen my horse's forage and given it to yours !" shouted Muller, who was evidently almost off his head with rage, making an at- tempt to hit Jantje with the whip as he spoke. The lat- ter avoided the blow by jumping behind John, with the result that the tip of the sjambock caught the English- man on the leg. 76 JESS. " Be careful, sir, with that whip," said John to Muller, restraining his temper with difficulty. "Now, how do you know that the man stole your horse's forage; and what business have you to touch him ? If there was any- thing wrong you should have reported it to me." " He lies, baas, he lies !" yelled out the Hottentot in tremulous, high-pitched tones. "He lies; he has always been a liar, and worse than a liar. Yah ! yah ! I can tell things about him. The land is English now, and Boers can't kill the black people as they like. That man that Boer, Muller, he shot my father and my mother my father first, then my mother; he gave her two bullets she did not die the first time." " You yellow devil ! You black-skinned, black-hearted, lying son of Satan !" roared the great Boer, his very beard curling with fury. "Is that the way you talk to your masters? Out of the light, rooibaatje" (soldier) this was to John " and I will cut his tongue out of him. I'll show him how we deal with a yellow liar;" and without further ado he made a rush for the Hottentot. As he came, John, whose blood was now thoroughly up, put out his open hand, and, bending forward, pushed with all his strength on Muller's advancing chest. John was a very powerfully made man, though not a very large one, and the push sent Muller staggering back. "What do you mean by that, rooibaatje?" shouted Muller, his face livid with fury. " Get out of my road or I will mark that pretty face of yours. I have some goods to pay you for as it is, Englishman, and I always pay my debts. Out of the path, curse you !" and he again rushed for the Hottentot. This time John, who was now almost as angry as his as- sailant, did not wait for him to reach him, but, springing forward, hooked his arm around Muller's throat, and, be- fore he could close with him, with one tremendous jerk managed not only to stop his wild career, but to reverse JESS. 77 the motion, and then, by interposing his foot with consid- erable neatness, to land him powerful man as he was on his back in a pool of drainage that had collected from the stable in the hollow of the inn-yard. Down he went with a splash, and amid a shout of delight from the crowd, who always like to see an aggressor laid low, his head bumping with considerable force against the lintel of the door. For a moment he lay still, and John was afraid that the man was really hurt. Presently, however, he rose, and without attempting any further hostile demon- stration or saying a single word, tramped off towards the house, leaving his enemy to compose his ruffled nerves as best he could. Now, John, like most gentlemen, hated a row with all his heart, though he had the Anglo-Saxon tendency to go through with it unflinchingly when once it began. Indeed, the whole thing irritated him almost beyond bearing, for he knew that the story would with additions go the round of the country-side, and, what is more, that he had made a powerful and implacable enemy. " This is all your fault, you drunken little blackguard !" he said, turning savagely on the tottie, who, now that his excitement had left him, was snivelling and drivelling in an intoxicated fashion, and calling him his preserver and his baas in maudlin accents. "He hit me, baas; he hit me, and I did not take the forage. He is a bad man, Baas Muller." "Be off with you and get the horses inspanned; you are half drunk," he growled, and, having seen the opera- tion advancing to a conclusion, he went to the sitting- room of the hotel, where Bessie was waiting in happy ig- norance of the disturbance. It was not till they were well on their homeward way that he told her what had passed, whereat, remembering the scene she had herself gone through with Frank Muller, and the threats that he had then made use of, she looked very grave. Her old 78 JESS. uncle, too, was much put out when he heard the story on their arrival home that evening. " You have made an enemy, Captain Kiel," he said, " and a bad one. Not but what you were right to stand up for the Hottentot. I would have done as much my- self had I been there and ten years younger, but Frank Muller is not the man to forget being put upon his back before a lot of Kaffirs and white folk too. Perhaps that Jantje is sober by now." This conversation took place upon the following morning, as they sat upon the veran- da after breakfast. " I will go and call him, and we will hear what this story is about his father and his mother." Presently he returned, followed by the ragged, dirty- looking little Hottentot, who took off his hat and squatted down on the drive, looking very miserable and ashamed of himself, in the full glare of the African sun, to the effects of which he appeared to be totally impervious. "Now, Jantje, listen to me," said the old man. " Yes- terday you got drunk again. Well, I'm not going to talk about that now, except to say that if I find or hear of your being drunk once more you leave this place." " Yes, baas," said the Hottentot, meekly. " I was drunk, though not very; I only had half a bottle of Cape Smoke." " By getting drunk you made a quarrel with Baas Mul- ler, so that blows passed between Baas Muller and the baas here on your account, which was more than you are worth. Now when Baas Muller had struck you, you said that he had shot your father and your mother. Was that a lie, or what did you mean by saying it ?" "It was no lie, baas," said the Hottentot, excitedly. "I have said it once, and I will say it again. Listen, baas, and I will tell you the story. When I was young, so high " and he held his hand high enough to indicate a tottie of about fourteen years of age " we, that is, my father, my mother, my uncle a very old man, older than the JESS. 79 baas " (pointing to Silas Croft) " were bijwoners (author- ized squatters) on a place belonging to old Jacob Muller, Baas Frank's father, down in Lydenburg yonder. It was a bush-veldt farm, and old Jacob used to come down there with his cattle from the High veldt in the winter when there was no grass in the High veldt, and with him came the Englishwoman, his wife, and the young Baas Frank the baas we saw yesterday." " How long ago was all this ?" asked Mr. Croft. Jantje counted on his fingers for some seconds, and then held up his hand and opened it four times in succes- sion. " So," he said, " twenty years last winter. Baas Frank was young then, he had only a little down upon his chin. One year, when Om Jacob went away, after the first rains, he left six oxen that were too poor (thin) to go, with my father, and told him to look after them as though they were, his children. But the oxen were bewitched. Three of them took the lungsick and died, a lion got one, a snake killed one, and one ate ' tulip ' and died too. So when Om Jacob came back the next year all the oxen were gone. He was very angry with my father, and beat him with a yoke-strap till he was all blood, and though we showed him the bones of the oxen, he said that we had stolen them, and sold them. " Now, Om Jacob had a beautiful span of black oxen that he loved like children. Sixteen of them were there, and they would come up to the yoke when he called them and put down their heads of themselves. They were tame as dogs. These oxen were thin when they came down, but in two months they got fat and began to want to trek about as oxen do. At this time there was a Basu- tu, one of Sequati's people, resting in our hut, for he had hurt his foot with a thorn. When Om Jacob found that the Basutu was there he was very angry, for he said that all Basutus were thieves. So my father told the Basutu that the baas said that he must go away, and he went 80 JESS. that night. Kext morning the span of black oxen were gone too. The kraal-gate was down, and they had gone. We hunted all day, but we could not find them. Then Om Jacob got mad with rage, and the young Baas Frank told him that one of the Kaffir boys had said to him that he had heard my father sell them to the Basutu for sheep which he was to pay to us in the summer. It was a lie, but Baas Frank hated my father because of something about a woman a Zulu girl. Next morning, when we were asleep, just at daybreak, Om Jacob Muller and Baas Frank and two Kaffirs came into the hut and pulled us out, the old man my uncle, my father, my mother, and myself, and tied us up to four mimosa-trees, with buffalo reims. Then the Kaffirs went away, and Om Jacob asked my father where the cattle were, and my father told him that he did not know. Then he took off his hat and said a prayer to the Big Man in the sky, and when he had done Baas Frank came up with a gun, and stood quite close and shot my father dead, and he fell forward and hung quiet over the reim, his head touching his feet. Then he loaded the gun again and shot the old man, my uncle, and he slipped down dead, and his hands stuck up in the air against the reim. Next he shot my mother, but the bullet did not kill her, and cut the reim, and she ran away, and he ran after her and killed her. When that was done he came back to shoot me; but I was young then, and did not know that it is better to be dead than to live like a dog, and I begged and prayed for mercy while he was loading the gun. " But the baas only laughed, and said he would teach Hottentots how to steal cattle, and old Om Jacob prayed out loud to the Big Man and said he was very sorry for me, but it was the dear Lord's will. And then, just as Baas Frank lifted the gun, he dropped it again, for there, coming softly, softly over the brow of the hill, in and out between the bushes, were all the sixteen oxen ! They had JESS. 81 got out in the night and strayed away into some kloof for a change of pasture, and come back when they were full and tired of being alone. Om Jacob turned quite white and scratched his head, and then fell upon his knees and thanked the dear Lord for saving my life; and just then the Englishwoman, Baas Frank's mother, came down from the .wagon to see what the firing was at, and when she saw all the people dead and me weeping, tied to the tree, and learned what it was about, she went quite mad, for sometimes she had a kind heart when she was not drunk, and said that a curse would fall on them, and that they would all die in blood. And she took a knife and cut me loose, though Baas Frank wanted to kill me, so that I might tell no tales; and I ran away, travelling by night and hid- ing by day, for I was very much frightened, till I got to Na- tal, and there I stopped, working in Natal till the land be- came English, when Baas Croft hired me to drive his cart up from Maritzburg; and living by here I found Baas Frank, looking bigger but just the same except for his beard. " There, baas, that is the truth, and all the truth, and that is why I hate Baas Frank, because he shot my father and mother, and why Baas Frank hates me, because he cannot forget that he did it and I saw him do it, for, as our people say, ' one always hates a man one has wounded with a spear;' " and having finished his narrative, the mis- erable-looking little man picked up his greasy old felt hat, that had a leather strap fixed round the crown, in which were stuck a couple of frayed ostrich feathers, and jammed it down over his ears, and then fell to drawing circles on the soil with his long toes. His auditors only looked at one another. Such a ghastly tale seemed to be beyond comment. They never doubted its truth; the man's way of telling it carried conviction with it. And, indeed, two of them at any rate had heard such stories before. Most people have who live in the wilder parts of South Africa, though they are not all to be taken for gospel. 6 82 JESS. " You say," remarked old Silas, at last, " that the wom- an said that a curse would fall on them and that they would die in blood ? She was right. Twelve years ago Om Jacob and his wife were murdered by a party of Ma- poch's Kaffirs, down on the edge of that very Lydenburg veldt. There was a great noise about it at the time, I re- member, but nothing came of it. Baas Frank was not there. He was away shooting buck ; so he escaped, and inherited all his father's farms and cattle, and came to live here." " So," said the Hottentot, without showing the slightest interest or surprise. " I knew it would be so, but I wish I had been there to see it. I saw that there was a devil in the woman, and that they would die as she said. When there is a devil in people they always speak the truth, be- cause they can't help it. Look, baas, I draw a circle in the sand with my foot, and I say some words so, and at last the ends touch. There, that is the circle of Om Jacob and his wife the Englishwoman. The ends have touched and they are dead. An old witch-doctor taught me how to draw the circle of a man's life and what words to say. And now I draw another of Baas Frank. Ah ! there is a stone sticking up in the way. The ends will not touch. But now I work and work and work with my foot, and say the words and say the words, and so the stone comes up and the ends touch now. So it is with Baas Frank. One day the stone will come up and the ends will touch, and he too will die in blood. The devil in the English- woman said so, and devils cannot lie or speak half the truth only. And now, look, I rub my foot over the cir- cles and they are gone, and there is only the path again. That means that when they have died in blood they will be quite forgotten and stamped out. Even their graves will be flat," and he wrinkled up his yellow face into a smile, or rather a grin, and then added, in a matter-of-fact way, " Does the baas wish the gray mare to have one bundle of green forage, or two ?" CHAPTER X. JOHN HAS AN ESCAPE. ON the following Monday, John, taking Jantje to drive him, departed in a rough Scotch cart, to which were har- nessed two of the best horses at Mooifontein, to shoot buck at Hans Coetzee's. He reached the place at about half-past eight, and con- cluded, from the fact of the presence of several carts and horses, that he was not the only guest. Indeed, the first person that he saw as the cart pulled up was his late ene- my, Frank Muller. "Kek (look), baas," said Jantj6, "there is Baas Frank talking to a Basutu !" John was, as may be imagined, not best pleased at this meeting. He had always disliked the man, and since Mul- ler's conduct on the previous Friday, and Jantje's story of the dark deed of blood in which he had been the principal actor, he positively loathed the sight of him. He got out of the cart, and was going to walk round to the back of the house in order to avoid him, when Muller, to all ap- pearance, suddenly became aware of his presence, and ad- vanced to meet him with the utmost cordiality. "How do you do, captain?" he said, holding out his hand, which John just touched. "So you have come to shoot buck with Om Coetzee ; going to show us Trans- vaalers how to do it, eh ? There, captain, don't look as stiff as a rifle-barrel. I know what you are thinking of : that little business at Wakkerstroom on Friday, is it not ? Well, now, I tell you what it is, I was in the wrong, and I 84 JESS. ain't afraid to say so as between man and man. I had had a glass, that was the fact, and did not quite know what I was about. We have got to live as neighbors here, so let us forget all about it and be brothers again. I never bear malice, not I. It is not the Lord's will that we should bear malice. Hit out from the shoulder, I say, and then forget all about it. If it hadn't been for that little mon- key," he added, jerking his thumb in the direction of Jantje, who was holding the horses' heads, " it would never have happened, and it is not nice that two Christians should quarrel about such as he." Muller jerked out this long speech in a succession of sentences, something as a schoolboy repeats a hardly learned lesson, fidgeting his feet and letting his restless eyes travel about the ground as he did so ; and it was evi- dent to John, who stood quite still and listened to it in icy silence, that it was by no means an extemporary one. It had too clearly been composed for the occasion. " I do not wish to quarrel with anybody, Meinheer Mul- ler," he answered, at length. " I never do quarrel unless it is forced on me, and then," he added, grimly, " I do my best to make it unpleasant for my enemy. The other day you attacked first my servant and then myself. I am glad that you now see that this was an improper thing to do, and, so far as I am concerned, there is an end of the mat- ter," and he turned to enter the house. Muller accompanied him as far as where Jantj6 was standing at the horses' heads. Here he stopped, and, putting his hand in his pocket, took out a two-shilling piece and threw it to the Hottentot, calling to him to catch it. Jantje was holding the horses with one hand. In the other he held his stick a long walking kerrie that he al- ways carried, the same on which he had shown Bessie the notches. In order to catch the piece of money he dropped the stick, and Muller's quick eye catching sight of the JESS. 85 notches beneath the knob, he stooped down, picked it up, and examined it. " What do these mean, boy ?" he asked, pointing to the line of big and little notches, some of which had evidently been cut years ago. Jantje touched his hat, spat upon the " Scotchman," as the natives of that part of Africa call a two-shilling piece,* and pocketed it before he answered. The fact that the giver had murdered all his near relations did not make the gift less desirable in his eyes. Hottentot moral sense is not very elevated. " No, baas," he said, with a curious grin, " that is how I reckon. If anybody beats Jantje, Jantje" cuts a notch upon the stick, and every night before he goes to sleep he looks at it and says, ' One day you will strike that man twice who struck you once,' and so on, baas. Look what a line of them there are, baas. One day I shall pay them all back again, Baas Frank." Muller abruptly dropped the stick, and followed John towards the house. It was a much better building than the Boers generally indulge in, and the sitting-room, though innocent of flooring unless clay and cowdung mixed can be called a floor was more or less covered with mats made of springbuck skins. In the centre of the room was a table made of the pretty " buckenhout " wood, which has the appearance of having been industriously pricked all over with a darning - needle, and round it were chairs and couches made of stinkwood, and seated with rimpis or strips of hide. In one big chair at the end of the room, busily em- ployed in doing nothing, sat Tanta (Aunt) Coetzee, the wife of Old Hans, a large and weighty woman, who had evidently once been rather handsome ; and on the couches * Because once upon a time a Scotchman made a great impression on the simple native mind in Natal by palming off some thousands of florins among them at the nominal value of half a crown. 86 JESS. were some half - dozen Boers, their rifles in their hands or between their knees. It struck John as he entered that some of these did not look best pleased to see him, and he thought he heard one young fellow, with a hang-dog expression of face, mutter something about the " damned Englishman " to his neigh- bor rather more loudly than was necessary to convey his sentiments. However, old Coetzee came forward to greet him heartily enough, and called to his daughters two fine girls, very smartly dressed for Dutchwomen to give the captain a cup of coffee. Then John made the rounds af- ter the Boer fashion, and, beginning with the old lady in the chair, received a lymphatic shake of the hand from every single soul in the room. They did not rise it is not customary to do so they merely extended their paws, all of them more or less damp, and uttered the mystic monosyllable "Daag," short for good-day. It is a very trying ceremony till one gets used to it, and John pulled up panting, to be presented with a cup of coffee that he did not want, but which it would be rude not to drink. " The captain is a rooibaatje ?" said" the old lady, " Aunt " Coetzee, interrogatively, and yet with the certainty of one who states a fact. John signified that he was. " What does the captain come to the ' land ' for ? Is it to spy ?" The whole room listened attentively to their hostess's question, and then turned their heads to listen for the answer. " No. I have come to farm with Silas Croft." There was a general smile of incredulity. Could a rooibaatje farm? Certainly not. " There are three thousand men in the British army," announced the old vrouw, oracularly, and casting a severe glance at the wolf in sheep's clothing, the man of blood who pretended to farm. JESS. 87 Everybody looked at John again, and awaited his answer in dead silence. " There are nearly three hundred thousand men in the regular British army, and as many more in the Indian army, and twice as many more volunteers," he said, in a rather irritated voice. This statement also was received with the most discour- aging incredulity. " There are three thousand men in the British army," re- peated the old lady, in a tone of certainty that was posi- tively crushing. " Yah, yah !" chimed in some of the younger men in chorus. "There are three thousand men in the British army," she repeated, for the third time, in triumph. " If the cap- tain says that there are more he lies. It is natural that he should lie about his own army. My grandfather's brother was at Cape Town in the time of Governor Smith, and he saw the whole British army. He counted them ; there were exactly three thousand. I say that there are three thousand men in the British army." "Yah, yah !" said the chorus ; and John gazed at this terrible person in bland exasperation. " How many men do you command in the British army ?" she interrogated, after a solemn pause. " A hundred," said John, sharply. " Girl," said the old woman, addressing one of her daugh- ters, " you have been to school and can reckon. How many times does one hundred go into three thousand ?" The young lady addressed giggled confusedly, and looked for assistance to a sardonic young Boer whom she was going to marry, who shook his head sadly, indicating thereby that these were mysteries into which it was not well to pry. Thrown on her own resources, the young lady plunged into the recesses of an intricate calculation, in which her fingers played a considerable part, and final- 88 JESS. ly, with an air of triumph, announced that it went twenty- six times exactly. " Yah, yah !" said the chorus, " it goes twenty-six times exactly." "The captain," said the oracular old lady, who was rapidly driving John mad, "commands a twenty-sixth part of the British army, and he says that he comes here to farm with Uncle Silas Croft. He says," she went on, with withering contempt, " that he comes here to farm when he commands a twenty-sixth part of the British army. It is evident that he lies." " Yah, yah !" said the chorus. " It is natural that he should lie !" she continued ; " all Englishmen lie, especially the rooibaatje Englishman, but he should not lie so badly. It must vex the dear Lord to hear a man lie so badly, even though he be an Englishman and a rooibaatje." At this point John burst from the house, and swore frantically to himself as soon as he got outside ; and, real- ly, it is to be hoped that he was forgiven, for the provoca- tion was not small. It is not pleasant to be universally set down as a " leugenaar " (liar), even as one of the very feeblest order. In another minute old Hans Coetzee came out and patted him warmly on the shoulder, in a way that seemed to say that, whatever others might think of the insufficiency of his powers of falsehood, he, for one, quite appreciated them, and announced that it was time to be moving. Accordingly the whole party got into their carts or on to their shooting-horses, as the case might be, and started. Frank Muller was, John noticed, mounted as usual on his fine black horse. After driving for more than half an hour along an indefinite kind of wagon track, the leading cart, in which was old Hans Coetzee himself, a Malay driver, and a colored Cape boy, turned to the left across the open yeldt ? and the others followed in turn. This went on for JESS. 89 some time, till at last they reached the crest of a rise that commanded a large sweep of open country, and here Hans halted and held np his hand, whereon the others halted too. On looking out over the vast plain before him John dis- covered the reason. About half a mile beneath them was a great herd of blesbuck feeding, three hundred or more of them, and beyond them again another herd of some sixty or seventy much larger and wilder - looking animals with white tails, which John at once recognized as vilderbeeste. Nearer to them again, dotted about here and there on the plain, were a couple of dozen or so of graceful yellow springbuck. Then a council of war was held, which resulted in the men on horseback among whom was Frank Muller be- ing despatched to circumvent the herds and drive them towards the carts, that took up their stations at various points towards which the buck were likely to make. Then came a pause of a quarter of an hour or so, till sud- denly, from the far ridge of the opposite slope, John saw a couple of puffs of white smoke float up into the air, and one of the vilderbeeste below roll over on his back, kicking and plunging furiously. Thereon the whole herd of buck turned and came thundering towards them, stretched in a long line across the wide veldt ; the springbuck first, then the blesbuck, looking, owing to their peculiar way of hold- ing their long heads down as they galloped, for all the world like a herd of great bearded goats. Behind and mixed up with them were the vilderbeeste, who twisted and turned, and jumped into the air as though they had gone clean off their heads and were next second going clean on to them. It is very difficult, owing to his extraordinary method of progression, to distinguish one part of a gallop- ing vilderbeeste from another ; now it is his horns, now his tail, and now his hoofs that present themselves to the watcher's bewildered vision, and now again they all seem to be mixed up together. On came the great herd, making 90 JESS. the ground shake beneath their footfall ; and after them galloped the mounted Boers, every now and again jump- ing from their horses to fire a shot into the line of game, which generally resulted in some poor animal being left sprawling on the ground, whereon the sportsmen would remount and continue the chase. Presently the buck were within range of some of the guns in the carts, and a regular fusillade began. About twenty blesbuck turned and came past John, within forty yards of him. Springing to the ground, he fired both bar- rels of his " express " at them as they tore past alas and alas ! without touching them. The first bullet struck un- der their bellies, the second must have shaved their backs. Reloading rapidly, he fired again at about two hundred yards' range, and this time one fell to his second barrel. But he knew that it was a chance shot ; he had fired at the last buck, and he had killed one ten paces in front of him. The fact of the matter is that this sort of shooting is exceedingly difficult till one knows how to do it. The inexperienced hand firing across a line of buck will not generally kill one shot in twenty, as an infinitesimal dif- ference in elevation, or the slightest error in judging dis- tance in itself a most difficult art on those great plains will make the difference. A Boer almost invariably gets immediately behind a herd of running buck, and fires at one about half-way down the line. Consequently, if his elevation is a little wrong, or if he has misjudged his sight- ing, the odds are that he will hit one either in front of or behind the particular animal fired at. All that is necessary is that the line of fire should be good. This John soon learned, and when he had mastered the fact he became as good a game shot as the majority of Boers, but to-day be- ing his first, he did not, much to his vexation, particularly distinguish himself, the result of which was that his friends the Dutchmen went away firmly convinced that the Eng- lish ropibaatje shot as indifferently as he lied, JESS. 91 Jumping into the cart again, and leaving the dead bles- buck to look after itself for the present not a very safe thing to do in a country where there are so many vultures John, or rather Jantje, put the horses into a gallop, and away they went at full tear. It was a most exciting mode of progression, bumping along furiously with a loaded rifle in his hands over a plain on which antheaps as large as an arm-chair were scattered like burned almonds on a cake. Then there were the antbear holes to reckon with, and the little swamps in the hollows, and other agreeable surprises. But the rush and exhilaration of the thing was too great to allow him much time to think of his neck, so away they flew, sticking on to the cart as best they could, and trusting to Providence to save them from a complete smash-up. Now they were bounding over an antheap, now one of the horses was on his nose, but somehow they always escaped the last dire disaster, thanks chiefly to the little Hottentot's skilful driving. Every few minutes or so they would pull up whenever the game was within range, and John would spring from the cart and let drive, and then jump in and follow on again. This went on for nearly an hour, in which time he had fired twenty-seven cartridges and killed three blesbuck and wounded a vilder- beeste, which they proceeded to chase. But the vilder- beeste was struck in the rump, and a buck so wounded will go a long way, and go very fast also, and some miles of ground had been got over before he began to rest, only starting on again as they drew near. At last, on crossing the crest of a little rise, John saw what at first he took to be his vilderbeeste dead. A second look, however, showed him that, although it was a dead vilderbeeste, it most un- doubtedly was not the one that he had wounded, for that was standing, its head hanging down, about one hundred and twenty yards beyond the other animal, which had, no doubt, fallen to somebody else's rifle, or else been wounded farther back and come here to die. Now the vilderbeeste 92 JESS. lay within a hundred yards of them, and Jantje pointed out to John that his best plan would be to get out of the cart and creep on his hands and knees up to the dead animal, from the cover of which he would get a good shot at his own wounded bull. Accordingly, Jantje having withdrawn with the cart and horses out of sight under the shelter of the- rise, John crouched upon his hands and knees and proceeded to carry out his stalk. He got on all right till he was quite close to the dead cow, and was just congratulating himself on the prospect of an excellent shot at the wounded bull, when suddenly something struck the ground violently just be- neath his stomach, throwing up a cloud of earth and dust. He stopped amazed, and as he did so heard the report of a rifle somewhat to his right. It was a rifle bullet that had passed beneath him. Scarcely had he realized this when there was a sudden commotion in his hair, and the soft black felt hat that he was wearing started from his head, apparently of its own accord, and, after twirling round twice or thrice in the air, fell gently to the earth, and as it did so the sound of a second report reached his ears. It was now evident that somebody was firing at him ; so, jumping up from his crouching position, he tossed his arms into the air and sprang and shouted in a way that left no mistake as to his whereabouts. In an- other minute he saw a man on horseback, cantering easily towards him, in whom he had little difficulty in recogniz- ing Frank Muller. He went and picked up his hat; there was a bullet-hole right through it. Then, full of wrath, he advanced to meet Frank Muller. " What the did you mean by firing at me ?" he asked. " Allemachter, Carle!" (Almighty, my dear fellow) was the cool answer, "I thought that you were a vilderbeeste calf. I galloped the cow and killed her, and she had a calf with her, and when I got the cartridges out of my rifle for JESS. 93 one stuck and took me some time and the new ones in, I looked up, and there, as I thought, was the calf. So I got my rifle on and let drive, first with one barrel and then with the other, and when I saw you jump up like that and shout, and that I had been firing at a man, I nearly fainted. Thank the Almighty I did not hit you." John listened coldly. "I suppose that I am bound to believe you, Meinheer Muller," he said. " But I have been told that you have the most wonderful sight of any man in these parts, which makes it odd that at three hundred yards you should mistake a man upon his hands and knees for a vilderbeeste calf." " Does the captain think, then, that I wished to murder him; especially," he added, "after I took his hand this morning ?" " I don't know what I think," answered John, looking straight into Muller's eyes, which fell before his own. " All I know is that your curious mistake very nearly cost me my life. Look here!" and he took a lock of his brown hair out of the crown of his perforated hat and showed it to the other. "Ay, it was very close. Let us thank God that you escaped." " It could not well have been closer, meinheer. I hope that, both for your own sake and for the sake of the people who go out shooting with you, you will not make such a mistake again. Good-morning." The handsome Boer, or Anglo-Boer, sat on his horse stroking his beautiful beard and gazing curiously after John Niel's sturdy, English-looking figure as he marched towards the cart (for, of course, the wounded vilderbeeste had long ago vanished). " I wonder," he said to himself aloud, as he turned his horse's head and rode leisurely away, " if the old volk are right after all, and if there is a God." (Frank Muller was sufficiently impregnated with modern ideas to be a free- 94 JESS. thinker.) "It almost seems like it," he went on, "else how did it come that the one bullet passed under his belly and the other just touched his head without harming him ? I aimed carefully enough, too, and I could make the shot nineteen times out of twenty and not miss. Bah, a God! I snap my fingers at him. Chance is the only god. Chance blows men about like the dead grass, till death comes down like the veldt fire and burns them up. But there are men who ride chance as one rides a young colt ay, who turn its headlong rushing and rearing to their own ends who let it fly hither and thither till it is weary, and then canter it along the road that leads to triumph. I, Frank Muller, am one of those men. I never fail in the end. I will kill that Englishman. Perhaps I will kill old Silas Croft and the Hottentot too. Bah! they do not know what is com- ing. I know; I have helped to lay the mine; and unless they bend to my will I shall be the one to fire it. I will kill them all, and I will take Mooifontein, and then I will marry Bessie. She will fight against it, but that will make it all the sweeter. She loves that rooibaatje; I know it; and I will kiss her over his dead body. Ah ! there are the carts. I don't see the captain. Driven home, I suppose, on account of the shock to his nerves. Well, I must talk to those fools. Lord, what fools they are with their talk about the 'land,' and the ' verdomde Britische Gouvern- ment.' They don't know what is good for them. Silly sheep with Frank Muller for a shepherd! Ay, and they shall have Frank Muller for a president one day, and I will rule them too. Bah! I hate the English; but I am glad that I am half English for all that, for that is where I get the brains! But these people fools, fools. Well, I shall pipe and they shall dance!" " Baas," said Jantje to John, as they were driving home- ward, " Baas Frank shot at you." " How do you know that ?" asked John. "I saw him. He was stalking the wounded bull, and JESS. 05 not looking for a calf at all. There was no calf. He was just going to fire at the wounded bull when he turned and saw you, and he knelt down on one knee and covered you, and before I could do anything he fired, and then when he saw that he had missed you he fired again, and I don't know how it was he did not kill you, for he is a wonderful shot with a rifle he never misses." " I will have the man tried for attempted murder," said John, bringing the butt-end of his rifle down with a bang on to the bottom of the cart. " A villain like that shall not go scot-free." Jantje grinned. " It is no use, baas. He would get off, for I am the only witness. A jury won't believe a black man in this country, and they would never punish a Boer for shooting at an Englishman. No, baas, you should lie up one day in the veldt where he is going to pass and shoot him. That is what I would do if I dared." CHAPTER XL ON THE BEINK. FOE a few weeks after John Kiel's adventure at the shooting-party no event of any importance occurred at Mooifontein. Day followed day in charming monotony, for, whatever " gay worldlings " may think, monotony is as full of charm as a dreamy summer afternoon. " Happy is the country that has no history," says the voice of wis- dom, and the same remark may be made with even more truth of the individual. To get up in the morning and feel that one is full of health and strength, to pursue the common round and daily task till the evening, and finally to go to bed pleasantly tired and sleep the sleep of the just, is the true secret of happiness. Fierce excitements, excursions, and alarms do not conduce either to mental or physical well-being, and it is for this reason that we find that those whose lives have been chiefly concerned witli them crave the most after the quiet round of domestic life. When they get it they generally, it is true, pant for the ardors of the fray whereof the dim and distant sounds are echoing through the spaces of their heart, in the same way that the countries without a history are always anxious to write one in their own blood; but then that is a principle of nature which will allow of no standing still among her subjects, and has ordained that strife of one sort or an- other shall be the absolute condition of existence. On the whole, John found that the life of a. South African farmer came well up to his expectations. He had ample occupation; indeed, what between ostriches, horses, JESS. 97 cattle, sheep, and crops, he was rather over than under oc- cupied. Nor was he greatly troubled by the lack of civil- ized society, for he was a man who read a great deal, and books could be ordered from Durban and Cape Town, while the weekly mail brought up an ample supply of papers. On Sundays he always read the political articles in the Saturday Review aloud to old Silas Croft, who, as he got older, found that the print tried his eyes, and this was an attention that the old gentleman greatly appreci- ated. He was a well-informed man, and had, notwith- standing his long life spent in a half-civilized country, never lost his hold of affairs or his interest in the wide and rushing life of the world in one of whose side eddies he lived apart. This task of reading the Saturday Review aloud had formerly been a part of Bessie's Sunday service, but her uncle was very glad to effect an exchange. Bessie's mind was not quite in tune with the profundities of that journal, and her attention was apt to wander at the most pointed passages. And thus it came about, what be- tween the Saturday Review and other things, that a very warm and deep attachment sprang up betwixt the old man and his younger partner. John was a very taking man, especially to the old, for whom he was never tired of per- forming little services. One of his favorite sayings was that old people should be " let down easy," and he acted up to it. Moreover, there was a quiet jollity and a bluff honesty about him which was undoubtedly attractive both to men and women. But his great recommendation was that he was a well-informed, experienced man and a gen- tleman, in a country in which both were rare. Every week the old man got to rely more and more on him, and let things pass more and more into his hands. "I'm getting old, Niel," he said to him one night; "I'm getting very old; the grasshopper is becoming a burden to me : and I'll tell you what it is, my boy," laying his hand affectionately upon John's shoulder, " I have no son 98 JESS. of my own, and you will have to be a son to me, as my dear Bessie has been a daughter." John looked up into the kindly, handsome old face, crowned with the fringe of snowy hair, and at the two keen eyes set deep in it beneath the overhanging eyebrows, and thought of his old father who was long since dead; and somehow he was moved, and his own eyes filled with tears. " Ay, Mr. Croft," he said, taking the old man's hand, " that I will, to the best of my ability.'* " Thank you, my boy, thank you. I don't like talking much about these things, but as I said, I am getting old, and the Almighty may require my account any day, and if he does I rely on you to look after these two girls. It is a wild country this, and one never knows what may hap- pen in it from day to day, and they will want it. Some- times I wish I were clear of the place. And now I'm going to bed. I am beginning to feel as though I had done my day's work in the world. I'm getting feeble, John, that is the fact of it." After that he always called him John. Of Jess they heard but little. She wrote every week, it is true, and gave an accurate account of all that was going on at Pretoria and of her daily doings, but she was one of those people whose letters tell one absolutely noth- ing of themselves and of what is passing in their minds. They might as well have been headed " Our Pretoria Letter," as Bessie said, disgustedly, after reading through three sheets in Jess's curious, upright handwriting. " Once you lose sight of Jess," she went on, " she might as well be dead for all you learn about her. Not that one learns very much when she is with one," she added, reflectively. " She is a peculiar woman," said John, thoughtfully. At first he had missed her very much, for, peculiar as she un- doubtedly was, she had touched a new string in him some- where, of the existence of which he had not till then been JESS. 99 himself aware. And what is more, it had answered pretty strongly for some time; but now it was slowly vibrating itself into silence again, much as a harp does when the striker takes his fingers from the strings. Had she stayed on another week or so the effect might have been more en- during. But although Jess had gone away Bessie had not. On the contrary, she was always about him, surrounding him with that tender care a woman, however involuntarily, cannot prevent herself from lavishing on the man she loves. Her beauty moved about the place like a beam of light about a garden, for she was indeed a lovely woman, and as pure and good as she was lovely. Nor could John long remain in ignorance of her partiality for him. He was not a vain man very much the reverse, indeed but neither was he a fool. And it must be said that, though Bessie never overstepped the bounds of maidenly reserve, neither did she take particular pains to hide her preference. Indeed, it was too strong to permit of her doing so. Not that she was animated by the half-divine, soul-searing breath of passion, such as animated her sister which is a very rare thing, and, take it altogether, as undesirable and unsuitable to the ordinary conditions of this prosaic and work-a-day life as it is rare but she was tenderly and truly in love after the ordinary young-womanly fashion; indeed, her passion, measured by the every -day standard, would have proved to be a deep one. However this was, she was undoubtedly prepared to make John Niel a faithful and a loving wife if he chose to ask her to become so. And as the weeks went on though, of course, he knew nothing of all this it became a very serious question to John whether he should not ask her. It is not good for man to live alone, especially in the Transvaal, and it was not possible for him to pass day by day at the side of so mucli beauty and so much grace without thinking that it would be well to draw the bond of union closer. Indeed, 100 JESS. had John been a younger man or had less experience, he would have succumbed to the temptation much sooner than he did. But he was neither very young nor very in- experienced. Ten years or more ago, in his green and gushing youth, he had, as has been said, burned his fingers pretty sharply, and a lively recollection of this incident in his career had heretofore proved a very efficient warning to him. Also, he had got to that period of life when men think a great many times before they wildly commit them- selves to the deep matrimonial waters. At three-and- twenty most of us are willing, for the sake of a pretty face, to undertake the serious and in many cases overwhelming burdens, risks, and cares of family life, and the responsi- bility of the parentage of a large and healthy brood, but at three-and-thirty we take a different view of the matter. The temptation may be great, but the per-contra list is so very alarming, and we never know even then if we see all the liabilities. Such are the black thoughts that move in the breasts of selfish men, to the great disadvantage of the marriage market; and however it may lower John Niel in the eyes of those who take the trouble to follow this por- tion of his life's history, it must, in the interests of truth and fact, be confessed that he was not free from them. The fact of the matter was that, sweet as Bessie was and pretty as she was, he was not violently in love with hfcr ; and one requires at thirty-four to be violently in love to rush into the near risk of matrimony. But, however com- mendably cautious a man may be, he is always liable to be thrown into temptation sufficiently strong to sweep away his caution and make a mockery of his plans. However strong the rope, it has its breaking strain; and in the same way our power of resistance to any given course depends entirely upon the power of the temptation to draw us into it. And so it was destined to be with our friend John Niel. It was about a week after his conversation with old Silas JESS. 101 Croft that it occurred to John that Bessie's manner had grown rather strange of late. It seemed to him that she had avoided his society instead of, if not courting it, at least showing a certain partiality for it. Also, she had been looking pale and worried, and evinced a tendency to irritation that was quite foreign to her natural sweetness of disposition. Now, when a person on whom one is ac- customed to depend for most of that social intercourse and those pleasant little amenities that members of one sex value from another, suddenly cuts off the supply without any apparent rhyme or reason, it is enough to induce a feel- ing of wonder, not to say of vexation, in the breast. It never occurred to John that the reason might be that Bessie was truly fond of him, and perhaps unconsciously disap- pointed that he did not show a warmer interest in her. If, however, we were to examine into the facts of the case we should probably discover that this was the real explanation of the change. Bessie was a straightforward young woman, whose mind and purposes were as clear as running water. She was vexed with John though she would probably not have owned it even to herself in so many words and her manner reflected the condition of her mind. " Bessie," said John, one lovely day, just as the afternoon was merging into evening " Bessie " he always called her Bessie now " I am going down to the black-wattle plan- tation by the big mealie patch. I want to see how those young trees are doing. If you have done your cooking " for Bessie had been engaged in making a cake, as young ladies, to their souls' health, often have to do in the colo- nies " I wish you would put on your hat and come with me. I don't believe that you have been out to-day." " Thank you, Captain Niel, I don't think that I want to come out." " Why not ?" he said. "Oh, I don't know; because there is too much to do. If I go out that stupid girl will burn the cake," and she 102 JESS. pointed to a Kaffir intombi (young girl) who, arrayed in a blue smock, a sweet smile, and a feather stuck in her wool, was vigorously employed in staring at the flies on the ceiling and sucking her black fingers. " Really," she added, with a little stamp, " one needs the patience of an angel to put up with that girl's stupidity. Yesterday she smashed the biggest dinner-dish and then brought me the pieces with a broad grin on her face, and asked me to ' make them one ' again. The white people were so clev- er, she said, it would be no trouble to me. If they could make the white plate once, and could make flowers grow on it, it would surely be easy to make it whole again. I did not know whether to laugh or cry, or throw the pieces at her." " Look here, young woman," said John, taking the sin- ning girl by the arm and leading her solemnly to the oven, which was opened to receive the cake; " look here, if you let that cake burn while the inkosikaas (lady chieftain) is away, when I come back I will cram you into the oven to burn with it. I cooked a girl like that in Natal last year, and when she came out she was quite white!" Bessie translated this fiendish threat, whereat the girl grinned from ear to ear and murmured " Koos " (chief) in cheerful acquiescence. A Kaffir girl, on a pleasant after- noon, is not troubled by the prospect of being baked at nightfall, which is a long way off, especially when it was John Niel who threatened the baking. The natives about Mooifontein had pretty well taken the measure of John's foot by this time. His threats were awful, but his per- formances were not great. Once, indeed, he had to have a regular stand-up fight with a great fellow who thought that he could on this account be taken advantage of, but after he had succeeded in administering a sound hiding to that champion he was never again troubled in this respect. " Now," he said, " I think we have provided for the safe- ty of your cake, so come on." JESS. 103 "Thank you, Captain Niel," answered Bessie, looking at him in a bewitching little way she well knew how to assume, " thank you, but I think I had rather not go out walking." This was what she said, but her eyes added, " I am offended with you ; I want to have nothing to do with you." "Very well," said John; "then I suppose I must go alone," and he took up his hat with the air of a martyr. Bessie looked through the open kitchen door at the lights and shadows that chased each other across the swelling bosom of the hill behind the house. "It certainly is very fine," she said; "are you going far?" " No, only round the plantation." " There are so many puff-adders down there, and I hate snakes," suggested Bessie, by way of finding another ex- cuse for not coming. " Oh, I'll look after the puff-adders come along." " Well," she said at last, as she slowly unrolled her sleeves, which had been tucked up during the cake-mak- ing, and hid her beautiful white arms, " I will come, not because I want to come, but because you have overper- suaded me. I don't know what has come to me," she added, with a little stamp and a sudden filling of her blue eyes with tears, " I do not seem to have any will of my own left. When I want to do one thing and you want me to do another, it is I who have to do what you want; and I tell you I don't like it, Captain Niel, and I shall be very cross out walking ;" and she swept past him, on her way to fetch her hat, in that peculiarly graceful way that angry women can sometimes assume, and left him reflect- ing that he never saw a more charming or taking lady in Europe or out of it. He had half a mind to risk it and ask her to marry him. But then, perhaps, she might refuse him, and that was an idea that he did not quite take to. After our first youth 104 JESS. few men altogether relish the idea of putting themselves in a position that gives a capricious woman an opportunity of first figuratively jumping on them, and then perhaps holding them up to the scorn and obloquy of her friends, relations, and other admirers. For, unfortunately, until the opposite is clearly demonstrated, many men are apt to believe that not a few women are by nature capricious, shallow, and unreliable; and John Niel, owing, possibly, to that unhappy little experience of his youth, must be reck- oned among their misguided ranks. CHAPTER XII. OVER IT. ON leaving the house Bessie and John took their way down the long avenue of blue-gums. This avenue was old Silas Croft's particular pride, for although it had only been planted for about twenty years, the trees, which in the di- vine climate and virgin soil of the Transvaal grow at the most extraordinary rate, were for the most part very lofty, and as thick in the stem as English oaks of a hundred and fifty years' standing. The avenue was not over-wide, and the trees were planted quite close one to another, with the result that their brown, pillar-like stems shot up for many feet without a branch, while high overhead the boughs ' crossed and intermingled in such a way as to form a leafy tunnel, through which one looked at the landscape beyond as one does through a telescope. Down this charming avenue John and Bessie walked, and on reaching its limit turned to the right and followed a little footpath winding in and out of the rocks that built up the plateau on the hillside on which the house stood. Presently this led them through the orchard, and then came a bare strip of veldt, a very dangerous spot in a thunderstorm, but a great safeguard to the house and trees round it, for the ironstone cropped up here, and from the house one might generally see flash after flash striking down on to it, and even running and zigzagging about its surface. To the left of this were some cultivated lands, and in front of them the plantation in which John was anxious to inspect some recently planted wattles. 106 JESS. They walked right to the copse without saying a word. It was surrounded by a ditch and a low sod wall, whereon Bessie seated herself, saying that she would wait there till he had looked at the trees, as she was afraid of the puff- adders, of which a large and thriving family were known to live in the plantation. John assented, remarking that the puff-adders were brutes, and that he must have some pigs turned in to de- stroy them which the pigs do by munching them up, ap- parently without unpleasant consequences to themselves and then departed on his errand, wending his way gingerly through the feathery black wattles. It did not take long, and he saw no puff-adders. When he had finished looking at the young trees he returned, still walking delicately as Agag. On getting to the border of the plantation he paused to look at Bessie, who was some twenty paces from him, perched sideways on the low sod wall, and framed, as it were, in the full rich light of the setting sun. Her hat was off, for the sun had lost its burning force, and the hand that held it hung idly by her, while her eyes were fixed on the horizon flaming with all the varied glories of the African sunset. He gazed at her sweet face and lissom form, and some lines that he had read years before floated idly into his mind. " The little curls about her head Were all her crown of gold, Her delicate arms drooped downwards In slender mould, As white-veined leaves of lilies Curve and fold, She moved to measure of music, As a swan sails the stream " He had got as far as this when she turned and saw him, and he gave up the poetry in the presence of one who might well have inspired it. "What are you looking at?" she said, with a smile; " the sunset ?" JESS. 107 " No; I was looking at you." " Then you might have been better employed with the sunset," she answered, turning her head quickly. " Look at it! Did you ever see such a sunset? We sometimes get them like that at this time of the year, when the thun- derstorms are about." She was right; it was glorious. The heavy clouds which a couple of hours before had been rolling like celestial hearses across the azure deeps were now aflame with, glory. Some of them glowed like huge castles wrapped in fire, others with the dull red heat of burning coal. The eastern sky was one sheet of burnished gold, that slowly grew to red, and higher yet to orange and the faintest rose. To the left departing sunbeams rested lovingly on gray Quath- lamba's crests, even firing the eternal snows that lay upon his highest peak, and writing once more upon their white- ness the record of another day fulfilled. Lower down the sky floated little clouds, flame-flakes fallen from the burn- ing mass above, and on the earth beneath lay great depths of shadow barred with the brightness of the dying light. John stood and looked at it, and its living, glowing beauty seemed to fire his imagination, as it fired earth and heaven, in such sort that the torch of love lit upon his heart like the sunbeams on the mountain - tops. Then from the celestial beauty of the skies he turned to con- template the earthly beauty of the woman who sat there before him, and found that also fair. Whether it was the contemplation of the glories of nature for there is always a suspicion of melancholy in beautiful things or whatever it was, her face had a touch of sadness on it that he had never seen before, and which certainly added to its charm as a shadow adds to the charm of the light. " What are you thinking of, Bessie ?" he asked. She looked up, and he saw that her lips were quivering a little. " Well, do you know," she said, " I was, oddly enough, thinking of my mother. I can only just remember 108 JESS. her, a woman with a thin, sweet face. I remember one evening she was sitting in front of a house just as the sun was setting like it is now, and I was playing by her, when suddenly she called me to her and kissed me, and then pointed to the red clouds that were gathered in the sky and said, 'I wonder if you will ever think of me, dear, when I have passed through those golden gates ?' I did not understand what she meant then, but somehow I have remembered the words, and though she died so long ago I do often think of her;" and two large tears rolled down her face as she spoke. Few men can bear to see a sweet and pretty woman in tears, and this little incident was too much for John, whose caution and doubts all went to the winds together, and have not since been heard of. "Bessie," he said, "don't cry, dear; please, don't! I can't bear to see you cry." She looked up as though to remonstrate at his words, and then looked down again. "Listen, Bessie," he went on, awkwardly enough, "I have got something to say to you. I want to ask you if if, in short, you will marry me. Wait a bit, don't say anything yet; you know me pretty well by now. I am no chicken, dear, and I have knocked about the world a good deal, and had one or two love affairs like other people. But, Bessie, I never met such a sweet woman, or, if you will let me say it, such a lovely woman as you, and if you will have me, dear, I think that I shall be the luckiest man in South Africa;" and he stopped, not exactly knowing what else to say, and the time had not come for action, if indeed it was to come at all. When she first realized the drift of his talk Bessie had flushed up to the eyes, and then the blood had sunk back to her breast, and left her as pale as a lily. She loved the man, and they were happy words to her, and she was sat- isfied with them, though perhaps some women might have JESS. 109 thought that they left a good deal to be desired. But Bessie was not of an exacting nature. At last she spoke. " Are you sure," she said, " that you mean all this ? I mean sometimes people say things of a sudden, upon an impulse, and then afterwards they wish that they never had been said. If that was so it would be rather awkward, supposing I were to say 'yes,' you know." " Of course I am sure," he said, indignantly. " You see," went on Bessie, poking at the sod wall with the stick she held in her hand, " perhaps in this place you might be putting an exaggerated value on me. You think I am pretty because you see nobody but Kaffir and Boer women, and it would be the same with everything. I'm not fit to marry a man like you," she went on, with a sud- den burst of distress; "I have never seen anything or any- body. I am nothing but an ignorant, half -educated farmer girl, with nothing to recommend me, and no fortune except my looks. - You are different to me; you are a man of the world, and if ever you went back to England I should be a drag on you, and you would be ashamed of me and my colonial ways. If it had been Jess now, it would have been different, for she has more brains in her little finger than I have in my whole body." Somehow this mention of Jess jarred upon John's nerves, and chilled him like a breath of cold wind on a hot day. He wanted to put Jess out of his mind just now. " My dear Bessie," he broke in, " why do you suppose such things ? I can assure you that, if you appeared in a London drawing-room, you would put most of the women in it into the shade. Not that there is much chance of my frequenting London drawing-rooms again," he added. " Oh, yes ! I may be good-looking ; I don't say that I am not ; but can't you understand I don't want you to marry me just because I am a pretty woman, as the Kaffirs marry their wives. If you marry me at all I want you to marry 110 JESS. me because you care for me, the real me, not my eyes and my hair. Oh, I don't know what to answer you ! I don't, indeed !" and she began to cry softly. " Bessie, dear Bessie !" said John, who was pretty well beside himself by this time, " just tell me honestly do you care about me ? I am not worth much, I know, but if you do all this just goes for nothing," and he took her hand and drew her towards him, so that she half slipped, half got off the sod wall and stood face to face with him, for she was a tall woman, and they were very nearly of a height. Twice she raised her beautiful eyes to his to answer and twice her courage failed her, and then at last the truth broke from her almost with a cry: "Oh, John, I love you with all my heart !" And now I think that we may drop a veil over the rest of these proceedings, for there are some things that should be sacred, even from the pen of the historian, and the first transports of the love of a pure woman is one of them. Suffice it to say that they sat there side by side on that sod wall, and were as happy as people ought to be under such circumstances, till the glory departed from the west- ern sky and the world grew cold and pale, till the night came down and hid the mountains, and only the stars and they were left to look out across the dusky distances of the wilderness of plain. Meanwhile a very different scene was being enacted up at the house, half a mile away. Not more than ten minutes after John and his lady-love had departed on that fateful walk to look at the young trees, Frank Muller's stalwart form, mounted on his great black horse, was to be seen leisurely advancing towards the blue-gum avenue. Jantje was lurking about between the stems of the trees in the peculiar fashion that is char- acteristic of the Hottentot, and which doubtless is bred JESS. Ill into him after tens of centuries of tracking animals and hiding from foes. There he was, slipping from trunk to trunk, and gazing round him as though he expected each instant to discover the assegai of an ambushed foe or to hear the footfall of some savage beast of prey. There was absolutely no reason why he should be carrying on in this fashion ; he was simply indulging his natural instincts where he thought nobody would observe him. Life at Mooifontein was altogether too tame and civilized for Jantje's taste, and he/absolutely needed periodical recrea- tions of this sort. Like a civilized child he longed for wild beasts and enemies, and if there were none handy he found a reflected satisfaction in making a pretence of their presence. Presently, however, while they were yet a long way off, his quick ear caught the sound of the horse's footfalls, and he straightened himself and listened. Not satisfied with the results, he laid himself down, put his ear to the ground, and gave a guttural grunt of satisfaction. " Baas Frank's black horse," he muttered to himself. " The black horse has a cracked heel, and one foot hits the ground more softly than the others. What is Baas Frank coming here for? After missie (Bessie), I think. He would be mad if he knew that missie went down to the plantation with Baas Niel just now. People go into plantations to kiss each other (Jantje was not far out there), and it would make Baas Frank mad if he knew that. He would strike me if I told him, or I would tell him." The horse's hoofs were getting near by now, so Jantje slipped as easily and naturally as a snake into a thick tuft of rank grass that grew between the blue-gums, and waited. Nobody would have guessed that that tuft of grass hid a human being ; not even a Boer would have guessed it, unless he had happened to walk right on to the spy, and then it would have been a chance but that the 112 JESS. Hottentot would have managed to avoid being trodden on and escaped detection. There was, again, no reason why he should hide himself in this fashion, except that it pleased him to do so. Presently the big horse approached, and the snakelike Hottentot raised his head ever so little and peered out with his beady black eyes through the strawlike grass stems. They fell on Muller's cold face. It was evident that he was in a reflective mood in an angrily reflective mood. So absorbed was he that he nearly let his horse, which was also absorbed by the near prospect of a com- fortable stall, put his foot into a big hole that a wander- ing antbear had amused himself on the previous night by digging right in the centre of the road. "What is Baas Frank thinking of, I wonder?" said Jantje to himself as horse and man passed within four feet of him. Then rising, he crossed the road, and slipping round by a back way like a fox from a covert, was stand- ing at the stable-door with a vacant and utterly unobserv- ant expression of face some seconds before the black horse and its rider had reached the house. " I will give them one more chance, just one more," thought the handsome Boer, or rather half-breed (for it will be remembered that his mother was English), "and if they won't take it, then let their fate be upon their own heads. To-morrow I go to the bymakaar at Paarde Kraal to take counsel with Paul Kriiger and Pretorius, and the other ' fathers of the land,' as they call themselves. If I throw in my weight against rebellion there wall be no re- bellion ; if I urge it there will be, and if Om Silas will not give me Bessie, and Bessie will not marry me, I will urge it, even if it plunge the whole country in war from the Cape to Waterberg. Patriotism ! Independence ! Taxes ! that is what they all cry till they begin to believe it themselves. Bah ! those are not the things I would go to war for ; but ambition and revenge, ah ! that is another JESS. 113 thing. I would kill them all if they stood in my way, all except Bessie. If war breaks out, who will hold up a hand to help the ' verdomde Engelsmann ?' They would all be afraid. And it is not my fault. Can I help it if I love that woman ? Can I help it if my blood dries up with longing for her, and if I lie awake hour by hour of nights, ay, and weep I, Frank Muller, who saw the murdered hi Miles of my father and my mother and shed no tear Ix-rause she hates mp and will not look favorably upon me? " Ob, woman ! woman ! They talk of ambition and of avarice, and of self-preservation as the keys of character and action, but what force is there to move us like a wom- an ? A little thing, a weak, fragile thing a toy from which the rain will wash the paint and of which the rust will stop the working, and yet a thing that can shake the world and pour out blood like water, and bring down sor- row like rain. So ! 1 stand by the bowlder. A touch and it will go crashing down the mountain-side so that the world hears it. Shall I send it ? It is all one to me. Let Bessie and Om Silas judge. I would slaughter every Eng- lishman in the Transvaal to gain Bessie ay ! and every Boer too, and throw ajl the natives in ;" and he laughed aloud, and struck the great black horse, making it plunge and caper gallantly. " And then," he went on, giving his ambition wing, " when I have got Bessie and we have kicked all these Englishmen out of the land, in a very few years I shall rule this country; and what next? Why, then I will stir up the Dutch feeling in Natal and in the Old Colony, and we will push the Englishmen back into the sea, make a clean sweep of the natives, only keeping enough for ser- vants, and have a united South Africa, like that poor silly man Burgers used to prate of, but did not know how to bring about. A united Dutch South Africa, and Frank Muller to rule it ! Well, such things have been, and may 8 114 JESS. be again. Give me forty years of life and strength, and we shall see " Just then he reached the veranda of the house, and, dis- missing his secret ambitions from his mind, Frank Muller dismounted and entered. In the sitting-room he found Silas Croft reading a newspaper. " Good-day, Om Silas," he said, extending his hand. " Good-day, Meinheer Frank Muller," replied the old man, coldly, for John had told him of the incident at the shooting-party which had so nearly ended fatally, and though he had made no remark he had formed his own conclusions. " What are you reading in the Volkstem, Om Silas about the Bezuidenhout affair?" " No ; what was that ?" "It was that the volk are rising against you English, that is all. The sheriff seized Bezuidenhout's wagon in execution of taxes, and put it up to sale at Potchefstroom. But the volk kicked the auctioneer off the wagon and hunted him round the town ; and now Governor Lanyon is sending Raaf down with power to swear in special constables and enforce the law at Potchefstroom. He might as well try to stop a river by throwing stones. Let me see, the big meeting at Paarde Kraal was to have been on the fifteenth of December, now it is to be on the eighth, and then we shall see if it will be peace or war." " Peace or war ?" answered the old man, tejstily. " That has been the cry for years. How many big meetings have there been since Shepstone annexed the country ? Six, I think. And what has come of it all ? Just nothing but talk. And what can come of it ? Suppose the Boers did fight, what would the end of it be ? They would be beaten, and a lot of people would be killed, and that would be the end of it. You don't suppose that England would give in to a handful of Boers, do you ? What did General Wolse- JESS. 115 ley say the other day at the dinner at Potchefstroom ? Why, that the country would never be given up, because no government, Conservative, Liberal, or Radical, would dare to do such a thing. And now this new Gladstone government has telegraphed the same thing, so what is the use of all the talk and childishness ? Tell me that, Frank Muller." Muller laughed as he answered, " You are all very sim- ple people, you English. Don't you know that a govern- ment is like a woman who cries ' No, no, no,' and kisses you all the time ? If there is noise enough, your British government will eat its words and give Wolseley and Shepstone and Bartle Frere and Lanyon, and all of them, the lie. This is a bigger business than you think for, Om Silas. Of course all these meetings and talk are got up. The people are angry because of the English way of deal- ing with the natives, and because they have to pay taxes ; and they think that, now that you English have paid their debts and smashed up Sikukuni and Cetewayo, they would like to have the laud back. They were glad enough for you to take it at first ; now it is another matter. But still that is not much. If they were left to themselves noth- ing would come of it except talk, for many of them are very glad that the land should be English. But the men who pull the strings are down in the Cape. They want to drive every Englishman out of South Africa. When Shepstone annexed the Transvaal he turned the scale against the Dutch element and broke up the plans they have been laying for years to make a big anti-English re- public of the whole country. If the Transvaal remains English there is an end of their hopes, for only the Free State remains, and that is hemmed in. That is why they are so angry, and that is why their tools are stirring the people up. They mean to make them fight now, and I thinK that they will succeed. If the Boers win the day they will declare themselves ; if not, you will hear nothing 116 JESS. of them, and the Boers will bear the brunt of it. They are very cunning people, the Cape ' patriots,' but they look well after themselves." Silas Croft looked troubled and made no answer, and Frank Muller rose and stared out of the window. CHAPTER XIII. FRAXK MULLER SHOWS HIS HAXD. PRESENTLY Mulley turned round. "Do you know why I have told you this, Om Silas ?" he asked. "No." " Because I want you to understand that you and all the Englishmen in this country are in a very dangerous posi- tion. The war is a coming, and whether it goes for you or against you, you must suffer. You Englishmen have many enemies. You have got all the trade and own near- ly half the land, and you are always standing up for the black people, whom the Boers hate. It will go hard with you if there is a war. You will be shot and your houses will be burned, and if you lose the day, those who escape will be driven out of the country. It will be the Trans- vaal for the Transvaalers, then, and Africa for the Afri- canders." " Well, Frank Muller, and if all this should come to pass, what of it? What are you driving at, Frank Mul- ler ? You don't show me your hand like this for nothing." The Boer laughed. "Of course I don't, Om Silas. Well, if you want to know, I will tell you what I mean. I mean that I alone can protect you and your place and people in the bad times that are coming. I have more in- fluence in the land than you know of. Perhaps, even, I could stave off the war, and if it suited me to do so I would do it. At the least I could keep you from being harmed, that I know. But I have my price, Om Silas, as we all have, and it must be money down and no credit." 118 JESS. " I don't understand you and your dark sayings," said the old man, coldly. " I am a straightforward man, and if you will tell me what you mean I will give you my an- swer ; if not, I don't see the good of our going on talking." "Very well ; I will tell you what I mean. I mean Bessie. I mean that I love your niece and want to marry her ay, I mean to marry her by fair means or foul and that she will have nothing to say to me." "And what have I to do with that, Frank Muller ? The girl is her own mistress. I cannot dispose of her in mar- riage, even if I wanted to, as though she were a colt or an ox. You must plead your own suit and take your own answer." " I have pleaded my suit and I have got my answer," answered the Boer, with passion. " Don't you understand she will have nothing to say to me. She is in love with that d d rooibaatje Niel, whom you have brought up here. She is in love with him, I say, and will not look at me." " Ah," replied Silas Croft, calmly, " is that so ? Then she shows very good taste, for John Niel is an honest man, Frank Muller, and you are not. Listen to me," he went on, with a sudden outburst of passion ; " I tell you that you are a dishonorable man and a villain. I tell you that you murdered the Hottentot Jantj6's father, mother, and uncle in cold blood when you were yet a lad. I tell you that the other day you tried to murder John Niel, pre- tending to mistake him for a buck ! And now you, who petitioned for this country to be taken over by the queen, and have gone round singing out your loyalty at the top of your voice, come and tell me that you are plotting to bring about an insurrection and to plunge the land into war, and ask me for Bessie as the price of your protection ! And now I will tell you something in answer, Frank Mul- ler," and the old man rose up, his keen eyes flashing in wrath, and, straightening his bent frame, pointed towards .7 ESS. 119 the door. " Go out of that door and never come through it again. I rely upon God and the English nation to pro- tect me, and not on such as you, and I would rather see my dear Bessie dead in her coffin than married to a knave and traitor and a murderer like Frank Muller. Go !" The Boer turned white with fury as he listened. Twice he tried to speak and failed, and when the words did come they were so choked and laden with passion as to be scarce- ly audible. When thwarted he was liable to these excesses of rage, and they, figuratively speaking, spoiled his char- acter. Could he have kept his head, he would have been a perfect and triumphant villain; but as it was, the care- fully planned and audacious rascality of years was always apt to be swept away by the sudden gale of his furious passion. It was in such an outburst of rage that he had assaulted John in the inn yard at Wakkerstroom, and thereby put him on his guard against him, and now it mas- tered him once more. " Very well, Silas Croft," he said at last, " I will go ; but mark this, I will come back, and when I come it shall be with men armed with rifles. I will burn this pretty place of yours, that you are so proud of, over your head, and I will kill you and your friend the Englishman, and take Bessie away, and very soon she will be glad enough to marry Frank Muller ; but then I will not marry her no, not if she goes on her knees to me and she shall go on her knees often enough. We will see then what God and the English nation will do to protect you. God and the English nation ! Call on the sheep and the horses ; call on the rocks and the trees, and you will get a better an- swer." " Go !" thundered the old man, " or by the God you blaspheme I will put a bullet through you," and he reached towards a rifle that hung over the mantelpiece, " or my Kaffirs shall whip you off the place." Frank Muller waited for no more. He turned and went. 120 JESS. It was dark now, but there was still some light in the sky at the end of the blue-gum avenue, and as he rode away against it he made out Bessie's tall and graceful form soft- ly outlined upon the darkening night. John had left her to see about some pressing matter connected with the farm, and there she stood, filled with the great joy of a woman who has found her love, and loath as yet to break its spell by entering again into the daily round of common life. There she stood, a type and symbol of all that is beau- tiful and gracious in this rough world, the lovelight shin- ing in her blue eyes and thoughts of happy gratitude to the Giver of all good rising from her heart to heaven, drawn up thither, as it were, by the warmth of her pure passion, as the dew mists of the morning are drawn up- ward by the sun. There she was, so good, so happy, and so sweet ; an answer to the world's evil, a symbol of the world's joy, and an incarnation of the world's beauty ! Who but a merciful and almighty Father can create chil- dren such as she, so lovely, so lovable, and set them on the world as he sets the stars in the sky to light it and make beholders think of holy things, and who but man could have the heart to turn such as she to the base uses to which they are daily turned ? Presently she heard the horse's hoofs, and looked up, so that the faint light fell full upon her face, idealizing it, and making its passion-breathing beauty seem more of heaven than of earth. There was some look upon it, some indefinable light that day such is the power that love has to infuse all human things with the tint of his own splen- dor that it went even to the heart of the wild and evil man who adored her with the deep and savage force of his dark nature. For a moment he paused, half regretful, half afraid. Was it well to meddle with her, and to build up plans for her overthrow and that of all she clung to? Would it not be better to let her be, to go his way and leave her to go hers, in peace ? She did not look quite JESS. 12i like a woman standing there, but more like something be- longing to another world, some subject of a higher power. Men of powerful but undisciplined intellect like Frank Mul- ler are never entirely free from superstition, however free they may be from religion, and he grew superstitious, as he was apt to do. Might there not be an unknown penalty for treading such a flower as that into the mire into mire mixed perchance with the blood of those she loved ? For a few seconds he hesitated. Should he throw up the whole thing, \eswe the rebellion to look after itself, marry one of Hans Coetzee's daughters, and trek to the Old Colony, or Bechuanaland, or anywhere ? His hand be- gan to tighten on his bridle-rein and the horse to answer to the pressure. As a first step towards it he would turn away to the left and avoid her, when suddenly the thought of his successful rival flashed into his mind. What! leave her with that man ? Never ! He had rather kill her with his own hand. In another second he had sprung from his horse, and, before she had guessed who it was, was standing face to face with her. The strength of his jeal- ous desire overpowered him. " Ah, I thought he had come after missie," said Jantje, who, pursuing his former tactics, was once more indulging his passion of slinking about behind trees and in tufts of grass. "Now what will missie say !" " How are you, Bessie ?" he said, in a quiet voice; but she, looking into his face, saw that it belied his voice. It was alive with evil passions that seemed to make it positively lurid, an effect that its undoubted beauty only intensified. " I am quite well, thank you, Mr. Muller," she answered, as she began to move homewards, commanding her voice as well as she could, but feeling dreadfully frightened and lonely. She knew something of her admirer's character, and feared to be left alone with him, so far from any help, for nobody was about now, and they were more than three hundred yards from the house. 122 JESS. He stood before her, so that she could not pass without actually pushing past him. " Why are you in such a hurry?" he said. "You were standing still enough just now." " It is time for me to be getting in. I want to see about the supper." " The supper can wait awhile, Bessie, and I cannot wait. I am going off to Paarde Kraal to-morrow at daybreak, and I want to say good-bye to you first." " Good-bye," she said, more frightened than ever at his curious constrained manner, and she held out her hand. He took it and held it. " Please let me go," she said. " Not till you have heard what I have to say. Look here, Bessie, I love you with all my heart. I know you think I am only a Boer, but I am more than that. I have been to the Cape and seen the world. I have brains, and can see and understand things, and if you will marry me I will lift you up. You shall be one of the greatest ladies in Africa, though I am only plain Frank Muller now. Great things are going to happen in the country, and I shall be at the head of them, or near it. No, don't try to get away. I tell you I love you, you don't know how. I am dying for you. Oh ! can't you believe me, ray dar- ling! my darling! Yes, I will kiss you," and in an agony of passion, that her resistance only fired the more, he flung his strong arms round her and drew her to his breast, fight as she would. But at this opportune moment an unexpected diversion occurred, of which the hidden Jantj was the cause. See- ing that matters were getting serious, and being afraid to show himself lest Frank Muller should kill him then and there, as he would indeed have been quite capable of do- ing, he hit upon another expedient, to the service of which he brought a ventriloquistic power which is not uncom- mon among natives. Suddenly the silence was broken by JESS. 123 a frightful and prolonged wail that seemed to shape itself into the word " Frank," and to proceed from the air just above the struggling Bessie's head. The effect produced upon Mullet was something wonderful. " Allemachter!" he cried, looking up, " it is my mother's voice!" " Frank P" 1 wailed the voice again, and he let go of Bes- sie in his perplexity and fear, and turned round to try and discover whence the sound proceeded a circumstance that the young lady toto torment me, I suppose. Come in, miss ; there is some hot supper ready when you have washed your hands. The boys will see to the horses." Accordingly they entered, and were made as happy as a good supper, a hearty welcome, and comfortable beds could make people in their condition. In the early morning one of their estimable escort sent in a message to say that they were not to start before half- past ten, as their horses required more rest, so they got several hours more in bed than they had expected, and anybody who has ever made a journey in a post-cart in South Africa can understand what a blessing that was. At nine they had breakfast, and as the clock struck half- past ten Mouti brought the cart round, and with it came the two Boers. " Well, Mrs. Gooch," said John, " what do we owe you ?" " Nothing, Captain Niel, nothing. If you only knew what a weight you have taken off my mind ! Besides, we are quite ruined ; the Boers have taken all my hus- band's cattle and horses, and until last week six of them were quartered on me without paying a farthing, so it makes no odds to me." JESS. 211 " Never mind, Mrs. Gooch," said John, cheerfully, " the government will compensate you when this business is over, no doubt." "Mrs. Gooch shook her head prophetically. "Never" a farthing do I expect to see," she said. " If only I can get my husband back, and we can escape out of this wicked place with our lives, I shall be thankful. And look here, Captain Niel, I have put up a basket full of food bread, meat, and hard boiled eggs, and a bottle of three -star brandy. They may be useful to you and the young lady before you get home. I don't know where you will sleep to-night, for the English are still holding Standerton, so you won't be able to stop there, and you can't get right through. No, don't thank me, I could not do less. Good- bye good-bye, miss ; I hope you will get through all right. You had better look out though. Those two men you have got with you are a very bad lot. I heard say that that fat-faced man with the tooth shot two wounded men through the head after the fight at Bronker's Spruit, and I know no good of the other. They were laughing and talking together about you in the kitchen this morning ; one of my boys overheard them, and the man with the long hair said that, at any rate, they would not be troubled with you after to-night. I don't know what he meant ; perhaps they are going to change the escort ; but I thought that I had better tell you." John looked grave, and his suspicions re-arose, but at that moment one of the men in question rode up and told him that he must start at once, and so off they went. The second day's journey was in many respects a coun- terpart of the first. The road was utterly deserted, and they saw neither Boer, Englishman, nor Kaffir upon it ; nothing, indeed, except a few herds of game grazing on the ridges. About two o'clock, however, just as they had started on after a short outspan, a little incident occurred. Suddenly the Vilderbeeste's horse put his foot into an ant- 212 JESS. bear hole and fell heavily, throwing his rider on to his head. He was up in a minute, but his forehead had struck against the jawbone of a dead buck, and the blood was pouring from it all down his hairy face. His companion laughed brutally at the sight, for there are some natures in the world to which the sight of pain is irresistibly com- ical, but the injured man cursed aloud, trying to stanch the flow with the lappet of his coat. " Waacht een beeche " (wait a bit), said Jess, "there is some water in that pool;" and without further ado she got out of the trap and led the man, who was half-blinded with blood, to the spring. Here she made him kneel down and bathe the wound, which was not a very deep one, till it stopped bleeding, and then, having first placed a pad of cotton-wool, some of which she happened to have in the cart, upon it, bound her handkerchief tightly round his head. The man, brute as he was, appeared to be much touched at her kindness. "Almighty!" he said, "but you have a kind heart and soft fingers ; my own wife could not have done it better ; it is a pity that you are a d d Englishwoman." Jess climbed back into the cart, making no reply, and they started on, the Vilderbeeste looking more savage and unhuman than ever with the discolored handkerchief round his head, and his dense beard and hair matted with the blood he would not take the trouble to wash out of them. After this nothing further occurred till, by the orders of their escort, they outspanned, an hour or so before sun- set, at a spot in the veldt where a faint track forked out of the Standerton road. CHAPTER XXin. IN THE DRIFT OF THE VAAL. THE day had been intensely and overpoweringly hot, and our travellers sat in the shade of the cart positively gasping. During the afternoon there had been a little breeze, but this had now died away, and the stifling air felt as thick as though they were breathing cream. Even the two Boers seemed to feel the heat, for they were both outstretched on the grass a few paces to the left, to all appearances fast asleep. As for the horses, they were thoroughly done up too much so to eat and hobbled along as well as their knee-halters would allow, daintily picking a mouthful here and a mouthful there. The only person who did not seem to mind was the Zulu Mouti, who sat on an antheap near the horses, in the full glare of the setting sun, and comfortably droned out a little song of his own invention, for Zulus are as great for improvis- ing as the Italians. " Have another egg, Jess ?" said John. " It will do you good." " No, thank you ; the last one stuck in my throat. It is impossible to eat in this heat." "You had better. Goodness knows when and where we shall stop again. I can get nothing out of our delight- ful escort ; either they don't know or they won't say." "I can't, John. There is a thunderstorm coming up; I can feel it in my head, and I can never eat before a thun- derstorm and when I am tired," she added, by an after- thought. After that the conversation flagged for a while. 214 JESS. " John," said Jess, at last, " where do you suppose we are going to camp to-night ? If we follow the main road we shall reach Standerton in an hour." "I don't suppose that they will go near Standerton," he said. " I suppose that we shall cross the Vaal by another drift and have to 'veldt' it." Just then the two Boers woke up and began to talk earnestly together, as though they were debating some- thing hotly. Slowly the huge red ball of the sun sank towards the horizon, steeping the earth and sky in blood. About a hundred yards from where they sat the little bridle - path that branched from the main road crossed the crest of one of the great land-waves that rolled away in every direction towards the far horizon. John watched the sun sinking behind it till something called away his attention for a minute. When he looked up again there was a figure on horseback, standing quite still, upon the crest of the ridge in the full glow of the now disappearing sun. It was Frank Muller. John recognized him in a moment. His horse was standing sideways, so that even at that distance every line of his features, and even the trigger - guard of the rifle that rested on his knee, showed distinctly against the background of smoky red. Xor was that all. Both he and his horse had the appearance of being absolutely on fire. The effect produced was so weird and extraordi- nary that John called his companion's attention to it. She looked, and shuddered involuntarily. " He looks like a devil in hell," she said ; " the fire seems to be running all up and down him." " Well," said John, " he certainly is a devil, but I am sorry to say that he has not yet reached his destination. Here he comes, like a whirlwind." In another twenty seconds Muller had reined the great black horse on to his haunches alongside of them, and was smiling sweetly and taking off his hat. JESS. 215 " You see I have managed to keep my word," he said. " I can tell you that I had great difficulty in doing so ; in- deed, I was nearly obliged to give the thing up at the last moment. However, here I am." " Where are we to outspan to-night ?" asked Jess. " At Standerton ?" " No," he said ; " I am afraid that that is more than I can manage for you, unless you can persuade the English officer there to surrender. What I have arranged is, that we should cross the Vaal at a drift I know about two hours (twelve miles) from here, and outspan at a farm on the other side. Do not trouble, I assure you you shall both sleep well to-night," and he smiled a somewhat terrifying smile, Jess thought. "But how about this drift, Mr. Muller?" said John. " Is it safe ? I should have thought that the Vaal would have been in flood after all the rain that we have had." "The drift is perfectly safe, Captain Niel. I crossed it myself about two hours ago. I know you have a bad opinion of me, but I suppose you do not think that I should guide you to an unsafe drift ?" and with another bow he rode on to speak to the two Boers, saying, as he went, " Will you tell the Kaffir to put the horses in ?" With a shrug of the shoulders John rose and went off towards Mouti, to help him to drive up the four grays, who were now standing limply together, biting at the flies, that, before a storm, sting more sharply than at any other time. The two horses belonging to the escort were some fifty paces to the left. It was as though they appreciated the position of affairs, and declined to mix with the ani- mals of the discredited Englishman. The two Boers rose as Muller came and walked off tow- ards their horses, Muller slowly following them. As they came the horses hobbled away another thirty yards or so, and then lifted up their heads, and, as a consequence, their fore-legs, to which the heads were tied, and stood looking 216 JESS. defiantly at their captors, for all the world as though they were trying to make up their minds whether or not to shake hands with them. Frank Muller was alongside the two men now, and they were alongside the horses. " Listen !" he said, sternly. The men looked up. " Go on loosening the reims, and listen." They obeyed, and began to slowly fumble at the knee- halters. " You understand what our orders are. Repeat them you !" The man with the tooth, who was addressed, still hand- ling the reim, began as follows : " To take the two pris- oners to the Vaal, to force them into the water where there is no drift, at night, so that they drown ; if they do not drown, to shoot them." " Those are the orders," said the Vilderbeeste, grinning. " You understand them ?" " We understand, meinheer ; but, forgive us, the matter is a big one. You gave the orders we wish to see the authority." " Yah, yah," said the other, " show us the authority. These are two harmless people enough. Show us the au- thority for killing them. People must not be killed so, even if they are English folk, without proper authority, especially when one is a pretty girl who would do for a man's wife." Frank Muller set his teeth. " Nice fellows you are to have under one !" he said. " I am your officer ; what oth- er authority do you want ? But I thought of this. See here !" and he drew a paper from his pocket. "Here, you read it ! Careful now do not let them see from the wagon." The big, flabby -faced man took the paper and, still bending down over the horse's knees, read aloud : JESS. 217 "The two prisoners and their servant (an Englishman, an English girl, and a Zulu Kaffir) to be executed in pur- suance of our decree, as your commanding officer shall or- der, as enemies of the republic. For so doing this shall be your warrant." " You see the signature," said Muller, " and you do not dispute it ?" " Yah, we see it, and we do not dispute it." " Good. Give me back the warrant:" The man with the tooth was about to do so when his companion interposed. " No," lie said, " the warrant must remain with us. I do not like the job. If it were only the man and the Kaffir now but the girl, the girl ! If we give you back the warrant, what shall we have to show for the deed of blood? The warrant must remain with us." " Yah, yah, he is right," said the unicorn ; " the warrant must remain with us. Put it in your pocket, Jan." " Curse you, give it me !" said Muller, between his teeth. " No, Frank Muller, no !" answered the Vilderbeeste, patting his pocket, while the two or three square inches of skin round his nose wrinkled up in a hairy grin that, owing to the cut on his head, was even more curious than usual ; " if you wish to have the warrant you shall have it, but then we shall up-saddle and go, and you can do your mur- dering yourself. There, there ! take your choice ; we shall be glad enough to get home, for we do not like the job. If I go out shooting I like to shoot buck or Kaffir, not white people." Frank Muller reflected a moment, and then he laughed a little. " You are funny people, you home-bred Boers," he said ; " but perhaps you are right. After all, what does it matter who has the wan-ant, provided the thing is well done ? Mind there is no bungling, that is all." "Yah, yah," said the fat-faced man, "you can trust us 218 JESS. for that. It won't be the first that we have toppled over. If I have my warrant I ask nothing better than to go on shooting Englishmen all night, one down, the other come on. I know no prettier sight than an Englishman toppling over." "Stop that talk and saddle up, the cart is waiting. You fools can never understand the difference between killing when it is necessary to kill and killing for killing's sake. These people must die because they have betrayed the land." " Yah, yah," said the Vilderbeeste, " betrayed the land ; we have heard that before. Those who betray the land must manure it ; that is a good rule ;" and he laughed and passed on. Frank Muller watched his retreating form with a smile of peculiar malignity on his handsome face. "Ah, my friend," he said to himself in Dutch, "you and that war- rant will part company before you are many hours older. Why, it would be enough to hang me, even in this happy land of patriots. Old would not forgive even me for taking that little liberty with his name. Dear me, what a lot of trouble one has to take to be rid of a single enemy ! Well, it must be done, and Bessie is well worth it ; but if it had not been for this war I could never have managed it. Ah ! I did well to give my voice for war. I am sorry for the girl Jess, but it must be ; there must be no living witness left. Ah ! we are going to have a storm. So much the better. Such deeds are best done in a storm." Muller was right; the storm was coming up fast, throw- ing a veil of inky cloud across the star-spangled sky. In South Africa there is but little twilight, and the darkness follows hard upon the heels of the day. No sooner had the great angry ball of the sun finally disappeared than the night swept with all her stars across the sky. And now after her came the great storm, covering up her beau- ty with his blackness. The air was stiflingly hot. Above JESS. 219 was a starry space; to the east the angry bosom of the storm, in which the lightnings were already playing with an incessant flickering movement, and to the west a deep red glow, reflected from the sunken sun, yet lingered on the horizon. On toiled the horses through the gathering gloom. For- tunately the road was fairly level and free from mudholes, and Frank Muller rode just ahead to show the way, his strong, manly form standing out clear against the depart- ing western glow. Silent was the earth silent as death. No bird or beast, no blade of grass or breath of air stirred upon its surface. The only sign of life was the continual flickering of those awful tongues of light as they licked the lips of the storm. On for mile after mile, on through the desolation! They could not be far from the river now, and could catch the distant growling of the thunder, echoing solemnly down it. It was an awful night. Great pillars of mud-colored cloud came creeping across the surface of the veldt tow- ards them, seemingly blown along without a wind. And now, too, a ghastly-looking ringed moon arose and threw a weird, distorted light upon the blackness that seemed to shudder in her rays, as though with a prescience of the advancing terror. On crept the mud-colored columns, and on above them, and resting on them, came the muttering storm. The cart was quite close to the river now, and they could plainly hear its murmur. To their left was a koppie, covered with white, slablike stones, on which the sickly moonbeams danced. " Look, John, look !" cried Jess, with an hysterical laugh; "it looks like a huge graveyard, and the dark shadows between are the ghosts of the buried." " Nonsense," said John, sternly; " what do you mean by talking such rubbish ?" He felt that she was a little off her balance, and, what is more, he was getting rather off his own, and therefore 220 JESS. was naturally the angrier with her, and the more deter- mined to be perfectly matter-of-fact. Jess made no answer, but she was frightened; she could not tell why. The whole thing resembled some awful dream, or one of Dore's pictures come to life. No doubt, also, the near presence of the storm exercised an effect upon her nerves. Even the wearied horses snorted and shook themselves uneasily. They crept over the ridge of a wave of land, and the wheels rolled softly on the grass. " Why, we are off the road !" shouted John to Muller, who was still guiding them, fifteen or twenty paces ahead. " All right! all right! it is a short cut to the ford !" he called in answer, and his voice rang strange and hollow through the great depths of the silence. Below them, a hundred yards away, the light, such as it was, gleamed faintly upon the wide surface of the river. Another five minutes and they were on its shore, but in the gathering gloom they could not make out the opposite bank. x * " Turn to the left!" shouted Muller; "the ford is a few yards up. It is too deep here for the horses." John turned accordingly, and followed Muller's horse some three hundred yards up the bank till they came to a spot where the water ran with an angry music, and there was a great swirl of eddies. " Here is the place," said Muller; " you must make haste through. The house is just the other side, and it will be better to get there before the tempest breaks." " It's all very well," said John, " but I can't see an inch before me; I don't know where to drive." " Drive straight ahead ; the water is not more than three feet deep, and there are no rocks." " I am not going, and that is all about it." " You must go, Captain Kiel. You cannot stop here, and if you can we cannot. Look there, man!" and he JESS. 221 pointed to the east, which now presented a truly awful and magnificent sight. Down, right on to them, its centre bowed out like the belly of a sail by the weight of the wind behind, swept the great storm-cloud, while over all its surface the light- ning played unceasingly, appearing and disappearing in needles of fire, and twisting and writhing serpentwise round and about its outer edges. So brilliant was the in- termittent light that it appeared to fire the revolving pil- lars of mud-colored cloud beneath, and gave ghastly peeps of river and bank and plain, miles upon miles away. But perhaps the most awful thing of all was the preternatural silence. The distant muttering of thunder that they had heard had died away, and now the great storm swept on in silent majesty, like the passage of a ghostly host, from which there arose no sound of feet or rolling of wheels. Only before it sped the swift angels of the wind, and be- hind it swung the curtain of the rain. Even as Muller spoke, a gust of icy air caught the cart and tilted it, and the lightning needles began to play more dreadfully than ever. The storm was breaking upon them. " Come, get on, get on !" he shouted, " you will be killed here; the lightning always strikes along the water;" and as he said it he struck one of the wheelers sharply with his whip. " Climb over the back of the seat, Mouti, and stand by to help me with the reins!" sung out John to the Zulu, who obeyed, getting between him and Jess. " Now, Jess, hang on, and say your prayers, for it strikes me we shall have need of them. So, horses, so!" The horses backed and plunged, but Muller on the one side and the smooth-faced Boer on the other lashed them without mercy, and at last in they went into the river with a rush. The gust had passed now, and for a moment or two there was renewed silence, except for the whirl of the water and the snakelike hiss of the coming rain. 222 JESS. For a few yards, ten or fifteen perhaps, all went well, and then John suddenly discovered that they were getting into deep water; the two leaders were evidently almost off their legs, and could scarcely stand against the current of the flooded river. " Damn you!" he shouted back, " there is no drift here." " Go on, go on, it is all right!", came Muller's voice in answer. John said no more, but, putting out all his strength, tried to get the horses round. Jess turned herself on the seat to look, and just then came a blaze of lightning which revealed Muller and his two companions standing dis- mounted on the bank, the muzzles of their rifles pointing straight at the cart. " Oh, God!" she screamed, " they are going to shoot us." Even as the words passed her lips three tongues of flame flared out from the rifles' mouths, and the Zulu Mouti, sitting by her side, pitched heavily forward on to his head into the bottom of the cart, while one of the wheelers reared straight up into the air with a shriek of agony, and came down with a splash into the river. And then followed a scene the horror of which baffles my poor pen. Overhead the storm burst in fury, and flash after flash of fork, or rather of chain lightning, fell into the river. The thunder, too, began to crack like the trump of doom ; the wind rushed down, tearing the surface of the water into foam, and, catching under the tent of the cart, lifted it clean off the wheels, so that it began to float. Then the two leaders, mad with fear by the fury of the storm and the dying struggles of the off -wheeler, plunged and tore at the traces till they actually rent themselves loose and vanished between the darkness overhead and the boiling water beneath. Away floated the cart, now touching the bottom and now riding on the water like a boat, oscillating this way and that, and slowly turning round and round. With it floated the dead horse, drag- JESS. 223 ging down the other wheeler beneath the water. It was awful to see his struggles in the glare of the lightning, but at last he sank and choked. And meanwhile, sounding sharp and clear across the din and hubbub of the storm, came the cracking of the three rifles whenever the flashes showed the whereabouts of the cart to the murderers on the bank. Mouti was lying still in the bottom on the bed-plank, a bullet be- tween his broad shoulders and another in his skull; but John felt that his life was yet whole in him, though some- thing had hissed past his face and stung it. Instinctively he reached across the cart and drew Jess on to his knee, and cowered over her, thinking dimly that perhaps his body would protect her from the bullets. Rip ! rip ! through the wood and canvas ; phut ! phut ! through the air; but some merciful power protected them, and though one cut John's coat and two passed through the skirt of Jess's dress, not a bullet struck them. And very soon the shooting began to grow wild, and then that dense veil of rain came down and wrapped them so close that even the lightning could not show their whereabouts to the assassins on the bank. " Stop shooting," said Frank Muller ; " the cart has sunk, and there is an end of them. No human being can have lived through that fire and the Vaal in flood." The two Boers ceased firing, and the Unicorn shook his head softly and remarked to his companion that the damned English people in the water could not be much wetter than they were on the bank. It was a curious thing to say at such a moment, but probably the spirit that animated the remark was not so much callousness as that which ani- mated Cromwell, who flipped the ink in his neighbor's face when he signed the death-warrant of his king. The Vilderbeeste made no reply. His conscience was oppressed; he had a touch of imagination. He thought of the soft fingers that had bound up his head that morn- 224 JESS. ing ; the handkerchief her handkerchief ! was still around it. Now those fingers would be gripping at the slippery stones of the Vaal in their death-struggle, or probably they were already limp in death, with little bits of gravel sticking beneath the nails. It was a painful thought, but he consoled himself by thinking of the war- rant, and also by the reflection that, whoever had shot the people, he had not, for he had been careful to fire wide of the cart every time. Muller was also thinking of the warrant which he had forged. He must get it back somehow, even if " Let us take shelter under the bank there. There is a flat place, about fifty yards up, where the bank lies over. This rain is drowning us. We can't up-saddle till it clears. I must have a nip of brandy, too. Almighty! I can see that girl's face now! the lightning shone on it just as I shot. Well, she will be in heaven now, poor thing, if English people ever go to heaven." It was the Unicorn who spoke, and the Vilderbeeste made no reply, but advanced with him to where the horses stood. They took the patient brutes that were waiting for their masters, their heads well down and the water streaming from them, and led them along with them. Frank Muller stood by his own horse thinking, and watched them vanish into the gloom. How was he to get that warrant back without dyeing his hands even redder than they were ? As he thought, an answer came. For at that moment, accompanied by a fearful thunderclap, there shot from the storm overhead, which had now nearly passed away, one of those awful flashes that sometimes end an African tem- pest. It lit up the whole scene round as light as day, and right in the white heart of it Muller saw his two compan- ions in crime and their horses as the great king saw the men in the furnace. They were about forty paces from him, on the crest of the bank. He saw them, one moment JESS. 225 erect ; the next men and horses falling this way and that, prone to the earth. And then it was all dark again. He staggered with the shock, and when it had passed rushed to the spot, calling the men by name; but no an- swer came, except the echo of his voice. He was there now, and the moonlight began to struggle faintly through the rain. Its pale beams lit upon two outstretched forms one lying on its back, its distorted features gazing up to heaven, the other on its face. By them, the legs of the nearest sticking straight into the air, lay the two horses. They had all gone to their account. The lightning had killed them, as it kills many an innocent man in Africa. Frank Muller looked; and then, forgetting about the warrant and everything else in the horror of what he took to be a visible judgment, rushed to his horse and galloped wildly away, pursued by all the terrors of hell. 15 CHAPTER XXIV. THE-SHADOW OF DEATH. THE firing from the bank had ceased, and John, who still kept his head (being a rather phlegmatic specimen of the Anglo-Saxon race), realized that, for the moment at any rate, all danger from that source was ended. Jess lay perfectly still in his arms, her head upon his breast; and a horrible idea struck him that she might be shot perhaps already dead! "Jess, Jess," he shouted, through the turmoil of the storm, " are you all right ?" She lifted her head an inch or two " I think so," she said. " What is going on ?" " God only knows, I don't. Sit still, it will be all square." But in his heart he knew that it was not " all square," and that they were in imminent danger of death from drowning. They were whirling down a raging river in a cart. In a few moments it was probable that the cart would upset, and then Presently the wheel bumped against something, and the cart gave a great lurch and then scraped along a little. " Now for it," thought John ; for the water was pour- ing over the flooring. Then came a check, and the cart leaned still farther over. Crack ! The pole had gone, and the cart swung round bows, or rather box, on to the stream. What had hap- pened was this: they had stuck across a rock that pro- JESS. 227 jected up from the bed of the river, the force of the cur- rent having washed the dead horses to the one side and the cart to the other. Consequently they were anchored to the rock, as it were, the anchor being the dead horses, and the cable the stout traces of untanned leather. So long as these traces and the rest of the harness held they were, comparatively speaking, safe; but of course they did not know this. Indeed, they knew nothing. Above them rolled the storm, and round them the waters seethed, and the rain hissed. They knew nothing except that they were helpless living atoms, tossing between the wild waters and the wilder night, with imminent death staring them in the face, around, above, and below. To and fro they swung, locked fast in each other's arms, and as they did so came that awful flash that, though they knew it not, sent two of the murderers to their account, and for an in- stant, even through the sheet of rain, illumined the space of boiling water and the long lines of the banks on either side. It showed the point of rock to which they were fixed, it glared upon the head of one of the poor horses, tossed up by the driving current, as though it were trying to rise from its watery death, and revealed the form of the dead Zulu, Mouti, lying on his face, one arm hanging over the edge of the cart and dabbling in the water that ran level with it, in ghastly similarity to some idle pas- senger in a pleasure-boat, who lets his fingers slip softly through the stream. In a second it was gone, and they were once more in darkness. But then by degrees the storm passed off and the moon began to shine, feebly indeed, for the sky was not clear washed of clouds, which still trailed along in the tracks of the tempest, sucked after it by its mighty draught. Still it was lighter, and the rain gradually thinned till at last it stopped. The storm had passed in majesty down the ways of the night, and there was no sound round them but the sound of rushing water. 228 JESS. " John," said Jess, presently, " can we do anything ?" " Nothing, dear." " Shall we escape, John ?" He hesitated. " It is in God's hands, dear. We are in great danger. If the cart upsets we shall be drowned. Can you swim?" " No, John." " If we can hang on here till daylight we may get ashore, if those devils are not there to shoot us. I do not think that our chance is a good one." " John, are you afraid to die ?" He hesitated. " I don't know, dear. I hope to meet it like a man." " Tell me what you truly think. Is there any hope for us at all ?" Once more he paused, reflecting whether or not he should speak the truth. Finally he decided to do so. " I can see none, Jess. If we are not drowned we are sure to be shot. They will wait about the bank till morn- ing, and for their own sakes they will not dare to let us live." He did not know that all that was left of two of them would indeed wait for many a long year, and that the third had fled aghast. " Jess, dear," he went on, " it is no good to tell lies. Our lives may end any minute. Humanly speaking, they must end before the sun is up." The words were awful enough if the reader can by an effort of the imagination throw himself for a moment into the position of these two, he will perhaps understand how awful. It is a dreadful thing, when in the full flow of health and youth, to be suddenly placed face to face with the certainty of violent death, and to know that in a few more minutes your course will have been run, and that you will have commenced to explore the future, which may prove to be even worse, because more enduring, than the JESS. 229 life you are now quitting in agony. It is a dreadful thing, as any who have ever stood in such a peril can testify, and John felt his heart sink within him at the thought for Death is very strong. But there is one thing stronger, a woman's perfect love. Against this Death himself cannot prevail. And so it came to pass that now, as he fixed his cold gaze upon Jess's eyes, they answered him with a strange, unearthly light. She feared not Death, so that she might meet him with her beloved. Death was her hope and opportunity. Here she had none; there she might have all or sleep. The fetters had fallen from her, struck off by an overmastering hand. Her duty was satisfied, her trust fulfilled, and she was free free to die with her beloved. Ay ! her love was indeed a love deeper than the grave; and now it rose in all its strength, stand- ing tiptoe upon the earth, ready, when dissolution had lent it wings, to soar to love's own star. " You are sure, John ?" she asked again. " Yes, dear, yes. Why do you force me to repeat it ? I can see no hope." Her arm's were round his neck, her soft curls rested on his cheek, and the breath from her lips played upon his face. Indeed, it was only by speaking into each other's ears that conversation was feasible, owing to the rushing sound of the waters. " Because I have something to tell you which I cannot tell unless we are going to die. You know it, but I want to say it with my own lips before I die. I love you, John; I love you, I love you; and I am glad to die because I can die with you and go away with you." He heard, and such was the power of her love, that his, which had been put out of mind in the terror of that hour, reawoke and took the color of her own. He, too, forgot the imminence of death in the warm presence of his down- trodden passion. She was in his arms as he had taken her during the firing, and he bent his head to look at her. 230 JESS. The moonlight played upon her pallid, quivering face, and showed that in her eyes which no man could look upon and turn away from. Once more yes, even then there came over him that feeling of utter surrender to the sweet mastery of her will that had possessed him in the sitting- room of "The Palatial." But now, all earthly consider- ations having faded away, he no longer hesitated, but pressed his lips against hers and kissed her again and again. It was perhaps as wild and pathetic a love scene as ever the old moon above has looked upon. There they were, those two, experiencing the fullest and acutest joy that life has to offer in the actual shadow of death. Nay, death was present with them; for there, beneath their feet, half -hid- den by the water, was the stiffening corpse of the Zulu. To and fro swung the cart in the rush of the swollen river, up and down beside them the carcasses of the horses rose and fell with the swell of the water, on whose surface the broken moonbeams played and quivered. Overhead was the blue, star-sown depth through which they were waiting presently to pass, and to the right and left the long, broken outlines of the banks stretched dway till at Jast they appeared to grow together in the gloom. But they heeded none of these things; they remembered nothing except that they had found each other's hearts, and were happy with a wild joy it is not often given to us to feel. The past was forgotten, the future was at hand, and between the one and the other was spanned a bridge of passion made perfect and sanctified by the approach- ing end. Bessie was forgotten, all things were forgotten in that consuming fire. Let those who would blame them pause awhile. Why not ? They had kept the faith. They had denied them- selves and run straightly down the path of duty. But the compacts of life end with life. No man may bargain for the beyond. Even the marriage service shrinks from it. And now that hope had gone and life was at its extremest JESS. L ':;i ebb, why should they not take their happiness before they passed to the land where, perchance, all things will be for- gotten. So it seemed to them; if indeed they were any longer capable of reason. He looked into her eyes and she laid her head upon his heart in that mute abandonment of worship which is sometimes to be met with in the world, and is redeemed from vulgar passion by an indefinable quality of its own. He looked into her eyes and was glad to have lived, ay, even to have reached this hour of death. And she, lost in the depths of her own nature, sobbed out her passion-laden heart upon his breast, and called him her own, her own, her very own ! And so the long hours passed, till at last a new-born freshness in the air told them that they were not far from dawn. The death they were waiting for had not yet come. It must now be very near at hand. "John," she whispered in his ear, "do you think that they will shoot us ?" "Yes," he said, hoarsely; "they must for their own safety." " I wish it were over," she said. Suddenly she started back from his arms with a little cry, causing the cart to rock violently. "I forgot," she said "you can swim though I cannot. Why cannot you swim to the bank and get off under covi-r of the darkness. It is not more than fifty yards, and the current is not so very swift ?" The idea of escaping without Jess had never occurred to him, and now that she suggested it, it struck him as so absurd that he actually broke into a ghost of a laugh. " Don't talk nonsense, Jess," he said. " Yes, yes, I will. Go ! You must go ! It does not matter about me now. I know you love me, and I can die happy. I will wait for you. Oh, John ! wherever I 232 JESS. am, if I have any life and any remembrance I will wait for you. Never forget that all your life. However far I may seem away, if I live at all, I shall be waiting for you. And now go; you shall go, I say ! No, I will not be dis- obeyed. If you will not go I will throw myself into the water. Oh, the cart is turning over !" " Hold on, for God's sake!" shouted John. " The traces have broken." He was right; the tough leather was at length worn through by the constant rubbing against the rock, and the strain and swaying of the cart on the one side and the dead horses on the other. Round it spun, broadside on to the current, and immediately began to heave over till at last the angle was so sharp that the dead body of poor Mouti slid out with a splash and vanished into the dark- ness. This relieved the cart, and it righted for a moment; but being now no longer held up by the bodies of the horses, or by the sustaining power of the wind, it began to fill and sink, and at the same time to revolve round and round. John realized that it was all up, and that to stop in the cart would only mean certain death, because they would be held under water by the canvas tent. So, with a devout aspiration for assistance, he seized Jess round the waist with one arm and sprang off into the water. As he did so the cart filled and sank. " Lie still, for Heaven's sake !" he shouted, as they rose to the surface. In the dim light of the dawn, which was now creeping over the earth, he could make out the line of the left bank of the Vaal, the same from which they had started into the river on the previous night. It appeared to be about forty yards away, but the current was running quite six knots and he realized that, burdened as he was, it would be quite impracticable for him to try and reach it. The only thing to do was to keep afloat. Luckily the water was warm and he was a strong swimmer. In a minute JESS. 233 or so he made out that about fifty paces ahead some rocks jutted out twenty yards into the bed of the stream. Then, catching Jess by the hair with his left hand, he made his effort, and a desperate one it was. The broken water boiled furiously round the rocks. Presently he was in it, and, better still, his feet touched the ground. Next sec- ond he was swept off them and rolled over and over at the bottom of the river, getting sadly knocked about against the bowlders. Somehow he struggled to his legs, still re- taining his hold of Jess. Twice he fell, and twice he struggled up again. One more effort so. The water was only up to his thighs now, and he was obliged to half carry his companion. As he lifted her he felt a deadly sickness come over him, but still he struggled on like a man, till at last they both fell of a heap upon a big flat rock, and for a while he remembered no more. When he came to himself again it was to find Jess, who had recovered sooner than he had, standing over him and chafing his hands. Indeed, as the sun was up he guessed that he must have lost his senses for some time. He rose with some difficulty and shook himself. Except for some bruises, he was sound enough. "Are you hurt?" he asked of Jess, who, pale and faint and bruised, her hat gone, her dress torn by bullets and the rocks, and dripping water at every step, looked an ex- ceedingly forlorn object. " No," she said, feebly, " not very much." He sat down on the rock in the sun, for they were both shivering with cold. " What is to be done ?" he asked. " Die," she said, fiercely ; " I meant to die why did you not let me die? Ours is a position that only death can set straight." "Don't be alarmed," he said, "your desire will soon be gratified : those murdering villains will hunt us up pres- ently." The bed and banks of the river were clothed with thin 234 JESS. layers of mist, but as the sun gathered power these lifted. The spot where they had got ashore was about three hundred yards below that where the two Boers and their horses had been destroyed by the lightning on the pre- vious night. Seeing the mist lift, John insisted upon Jess crouching with him behind a rock so that they could look up and down the river without being seen themselves. Presently he made out the forms of two horses grazing about two hundred yards away. "Ah," he said, "I thought so; the devils have off-sad- dled there. Thank Heaven I have still got my revolver, and tHe cartridges are water-tight. I mean to sell our lives as dearly as I can." " Why, John," cried Jess, following the line of his out- stretched hand, "those are not the Boers' horses; they are our two leaders that broke loose in the water. Look, their collars are still on." " By Jove ! so they are. Now if only we can catch them without being caught ourselves we have a chance of getting out of this." " Well, there is no cover about, and I can't see any signs of Boers. They must have been sure of having killed us and gone away." John looked round, and for the first time a sense of hope began to creep into his heart. Perhaps they would survive after all. " Let's go up and see. It is no good stopping here ; we must get some food somewhere. I feel as w r eak as a cat." She rose without a word, and, taking his hand, they ad- vanced together along the bank. They had not gone twenty yards before John gave an exclamation of joy, and rushed at something white that had stuck in some reeds. It was the basket of food which had been given to them by the innkeeper's wife at Heidelberg. It had been washed out of the cart, and, as the lid was fastened, nothing had been lost out of it. He undid it. There was JESS. 235 the bottle of three-star brandy untouched, also most of the eggs, meat, and bread, which last was, of course, sod- den and worthless. It did not take long to get the cork out, and then John filled a broken wineglass there was in the basket half -full of water and half of brandy, and made Jess drink it, with the result that she began to look a lit- tle less like a corpse. Next, he repeated the process twice on his own account, and instantly felt as though new life were flowing into him. Then they went cautiously on. The horses allowed them to catch them without trouble, and did not appear to be any the worse for their advent- ure, though the flank of one was grazed by a bullet. "There is a tree down there where the bank shelves over; we had better tie the horses up, dress, and get some breakfast," said John, almost cheerfully; and accordingly they proceeded thither. Suddenly John, who was ahead, started back with an exclamation of fear, and the horses began to snort, for there, stark and stiff in death, and already swollen and discolored by decomposition as is sometimes the case with people killed by lightning the rifles in their hands twisted and fused, their clothes cut and blown from the bodies by the explosion of the car- tridges in their bandoliers lay the two Boers themselves. It was a terrifying sight, and, taken in conjunction with their own remarkable escape, one to make the most care- less and sceptical reflect. " And yet there are people who say that there is no such thing as a God, and no punishment for wickedness," said John, aloud. CHAPTER XXV. MEANWHILE. JOHN, it will be remembered, left Mooifontein for Pre- toria towards the end of December, and with him went all the life and light of the place. " Dear me, Bessie," said old Silas Croft on the evening after he had started, " the place seems very dull without John," a remark in which Bessie, who was secretly weep- ing in the corner, heartily concurred. ' Then, a few days afterwards, came the news of the in- vestment of Pretoria, but no news of John. They ascer- tained that he had passed Standerton in safety, but be- yond that nothing could be heard of him. Day after day passed, but no news, and at last, one evening, Bessie broke out in a passion of hysterical tears. " What did you send him for ?" she asked of her uncle. " It was ridiculous I knew it was ridiculous. He could not help Jess or get her back ; the most that could hap- pen was that they both would be shut up together. And now he is dead I know that those Boers have shot him and it is all your fault ! And if he is dead I will never speak to you again." The old man retreated, somewhat dismayed at this out- burst, which was not at all in Bessie's style. " Ah, well," he said to himself, " that is the way of wom- en ; they turn into tigers about a man !" There may have been truth in this reflection, but a tiger is not a pleasant domestic pet, as poor old Silas found out during the next two months. The more Bessie thought JE88. 237 about the matter the more incensed she grew at his hav- ing sent her lover away. Indeed, in a little while she quite forgot that she had herself acquiesced in his going. In short, her temper completely gave way under the strain, so that at last her uncle scarcely dared to mention John's name. Meanwhile things had been going as ill without as within. First of all that was the day after John's de- parture two or three loyal Boers and an English store- keeper from Lake Chrissie, in New Scotland, outspanned on the place and came and implored Silas Croft to fly for his life into Natal while there was yet time. They said that the Boers would certainly shoot any Englishmen who might be sufficiently defenceless. But the old man would not listen. " I am an Englishman civ is JRomamts sum," he said, in his sturdy fashion, " and I do not believe that they will touch me, who have lived among them for twenty years. At any rate, I am not going to run away and leave my place at the mercy of a pack of thieves. If they shoot me they will have to reckon with England for the deed, so I expect that they will leave me alone. Bessie can go if she likes, but I shall stop here and see the row through, and there's an end of it." Whereon, Bessie having flatly declined to budge an inch, the loyalists departed in a hurry, metaphorically wringing their hands at such an exhibition of ill-placed confidence and insular pride. This little scene occurred at dinner- time, and after dinner old Silas proceeded to hurl defiance at his foes in another fashion. Going to a cupboard in his bedroom, he extracted an exceedingly large Union Jack, and promptly advanced with it to an open spot between two of the orange-trees in front of the house, where a flag- staff was planted, formed of a very tall young blue-gum, in such a position that it could be seen for miles around. On this flagstaff it was old Silas's habit to hoist the Union 238 JESS. Jack on the queen's birthday, Christmas-day, and other state occasions. " Now, Jantje," he said, when he had bent on the flag, " run her up, and I'll cheer !" and, accordingly, as the broad flag floated out on the breeze, he took off his hat and waved it, and gave such a " hip, hip, hurrah !" in his stentorian tones that Bessie came running down from the house to see what was the matter. Nor was he satisfied with this, but, having obtained a ladder, he placed it against the post and sent Jantje up it, instructing him to fasten the rope on which the flag was bent about fifteen feet from the ground, so that nobody should get at it to haul it down. " There," he said, " I've nailed my colors to the mast. That will show these gentry that an Englishman lives here. " ' Confound their politics, Frustrate their knavish tricks God save the queen.' " " Amen," said Bessie, but she had her doubts about the wisdom of that Union Jack which, whenever the wind blew, streamed out a visible defiance not calculated to soothe the breasts of excited patriots. Indeed, two days after that, a patrol of three Boers, spy- ing the ensign while yet a long way off, came galloping up in hot haste to see what it meant. Silas saw them com- ing, and, taking his rifle in his hand, went and stood be- neath the flag, for which he had an almost superstitious veneration, feeling sure that they would not dare to med- dle either with him or it. " What is the meaning of this, Om Silas ?" asked the leader of the three men, with all of whom he was perfect- ly acquainted. " It means that an Englishman lives here, Jan," was the answer. " Haul the dirty rag down," said the man. " I will see you d d first !" replied old Silas. Thereon the Boer dismounted and made for the flag- JESS. 239 staff, only to find Uncle Croft's rifle in a direct line with his chest. " You will have to shoot me first, Jan," he said, and thereon, after some consultation, they left him and went away. The fact was that, notwithstanding that he was an Eng- lishman, Silas Croft was very popular with the Boers, most of whom had known him since they were children, and a member of whose Volksraad he had twice been. It was to this p'ersonal popularity that he owed the fact that he was not turned out of his house and forced to choose between serving against his countrymen or being impris- oned and otherwise maltreated at the very commencement of the rebellion. For a fortnight or more after this flag episode nothing of any importance happened, and then came the news of the crushing defeat at Laing's Nek. At first, Silas Croft would not believe the news. "No general could have been so mad," he said; but soon the report was amply con- firmed from native sources. Another week passed, and with it came the news of the British defeat at Ingbgo. The first they heard of it was on the morning of February 8, when Jantje brought a Kaffir up to the veranda at breakfast-time. This Kaffir said that he had been watching the fight from a mountain ; that the English were completely hemmed in and fighting well, but that " their arms were tired," and they would all be killed at night-time. The Boers, he said, were not suffering at all the English could not " shoot straight." After hearing this they passed a sufficiently miserable day and evening. About twelve o'clock that night, however, a native spy Mr. Croft had despatched came back with the report that the English general had got safely back to camp, having suffered heavily and abandoned his wounded, many of whom had died in the rain, for the night after the battle was wet. 240 JESS. Then came another long pause, during which no reliable news reached them, though the air was thick with rumors, and old Silas was made happy by hearing that large rein- forcements were on their way from England. "Ah, Bessie, my dear, they will soon sing another tune now," he said, in great glee; " and what's more, it's about time they did. I can't understand what the soldiers have been about I can't indeed." And so the time wore heavily along till at last there came a dreadful day which Bessie will never forget as long as she lives. It was the 20th of February just a week before the final disaster at Majuba Hill. " Bessie was standing idly on the veranda, looking down the long ave- nue of blue-gums, where the shadows formed a dark net- work to catch the wandering rays of light. The place looked very peaceful, and certainly no one could have known from its appearance that a bloody war was being waged within a few miles. The Kaffirs came and went about their work as usual, or made pretence to; but now and then a close observer might see them stop and look towards the Drakensberg and then say a few words to their neighbor about the wonderful thing that had come to pass that the Boers were beating the great white peo- ple, who came out of the sea and shook the earth with their tread. Whereon the neighbor would take the op- portunity to relax from toil and squat down, and have a pinch of snuff, and relate in what particular collection of rocks on the hillside he and his wives slept the last night, for when the Boers are out on commando the Kaffirs will not sleep in their huts for fear of being surprised and shot down. Then the pair would spend half an hour or so in speculating on what would be their fate when the Boers had eaten up the Englishmen and taken back the country, and finally come to the conclusion that they had better emigrate to Natal. Bessie, on the veranda, noted all this going on, every JESS. 241 now and again catching snatches of the lazy rascals' talk, which chimed in but too sadly with her own thoughts. Turning from it impatiently, she began to watch the hens marching solemnly about the drive, followed by their broods. This picture, too, had a sanguinary background, for under an orange-tree two rival cocks were fighting fu- riously. They always did this about once a week, nor did they cease from troubling till each retired, temporari- ly blinded, to the shade of a separate orange-tree, where they spent the rest of the week in recovering, only to emerge when the cure was effected and fight their battles over again. Meanwhile a third cock, young in years but old in wisdom, who steadily refused to fight when attacked, looked after the 'hens in dispute. To-day the fight was particularly ferocious, and, fearing that the combatants would have no eyes left at all if she did not interfere, Bes- sie called to the old Boer hound who was lying in the sun on the veranda. "Hi, Stomp, Stomp hunt them, Stomp!" Up jumped Stomp and made a prodigious show of furi- ously attacking the embattled cocks; it was an operation to which he was used, and which afforded him constant amusement. Suddenly, however, as he dashed towards the trees, he stopped midway, his simulated wrath ceased, and, instead, an expression of real disgust came upon his honest face. Then the hair along his backbone stood up like the quills upon the fretful porcupine, and he growled. " A strange Kaffir, I expect," said Bessie to herself. Stomp hated strange Kaffirs. She had scarcely got the words out before they were justified by the appearance of a native. He was a villainous-looking fellow, with one eye, and nothing on but a ragged pair of trousers fastened round the waist with a greasy leather strap. In his wool, however, were stuck several small distended bladders such as are generally worn by medicine-men and witch-doctors. 16 242 JESS. In his left hand he held a long stick, cleft at the end. lu the cleft was a letter. " Come here, Stomp," said Bessie, and as she did so a wild hope shot across her heart like a meteor across the night; perhaps the letter was from John. The dog obeyed her unwillingly enough, for he evident- ly did not like that Kaffir; and when he saw that Stomp was well out of the way the Kaffir himself followed. He was an insolent fellow, and took no notice of Bessie be- yond squatting himself down upon the drive in front of her. " What is it ?" said Bessie in Dutch, her lips trembling as she spoke. " A letter," answered the man. " Give it to me." " No, missie, not till I have looked at you to see if it is right. Light yellow hair that curls one" checking it on his fingers, " yes, that is right; large blue eyes two, that is right; big and tall, and fair as a star yes, the letter is for you, take it," and he poked the long stick up almost into her face. " Where is it from ?" asked Bessie, with sudden sus- picion, recoiling a step. " Wakkerstroom last." " Who is it from ?" " Read it, and you will see." Bessie took the letter, which was wrapped up in a piece of old newspaper, from the cleft of the stick and turned it over and over doubtfully. Most of us have a mistrust of strange-looking letters, and this letter was un- usually strange. To begin with, it had no address what- ever on the dirty envelope, which was curious. In the second place, the envelope was sealed apparently with a threepenny bit. " Are you sure it is for me ?" asked Bessie. " Yah, yah sure, sure," answered the native, with a rude laugh. " There are not many such white girls in the JESS. 243 Transvaal. I have made no mistake. I have ' smelt you out.' " And he began to go through his catalogue " Yel- low hair that curls," etc. again. Then Bessie opened the letter. Inside was an ordinary sheet of paper written over in a bold, firm, yet slightly un- practised writing that Bessie knew well enough, and the sight of which filled her with a presentiment of evil. It was Frank Muller's. She turned sick and cold, but could not choose but read as follows: "CAMP NEAR PRETORIA, 15 Febr>tary. " DEAR Miss BESSIE, I am sorry to have to write to you; but though we have quarrelled lately, and also your good uncle, I think it my duty to do so, and send this to your hand by special runner. Yesterday was a sortie made by the poor folk in Pretoria, who are now as thin with hun- ger as the high veldt oxen just before spring. Our arms were again victorious; the redcoats ran away and left their ambulance in our hands, carrying with them many dead and wounded. Among the dead was the Captain ifael " Here Bessie gave a sort of choked cry, and let the letter fall over the veranda, to one of the posts of which she clung with both her hands. The ill-favored native below grinned, and, picking the paper up, handed it to her. She took it, feeling that she must know all, and read on like one reads in some ghastly dream " who has been staying on your uncle's farm. I did not see him killed myself, but Jan Vanzyl shot him, and Roi Dirk Oosthuizen, and Carolus, a Hottentot, saw them pick him up and carry him away. They say that he was quite dead. For this I fear you will be sorry, but it is the chance of war, and he died fighting bravely. Make my obedient compli- ments to your uncle. We parted in anger, but I hope in the new circumstances that have arisen in the land to show him that I, for one, bear no anger. Believe me, dear Miss Bessie, your humble and devoted servant, FRANK MVLLER." 244 J E S S. Bessie thrust the letter into the pocket of her dress, and then again caught hold of the veranda post and supported herself by it, while the light of the sun seemed to visibly fade out of the day before her eyes and replace itself by a cold blackness in which there was no break. He was dead! her lover was dead! The glow had gone from her life as it seemed to be going from the day, and she was left desolate. She had no knowledge of how long she stood thus, staring with wide eyes at the sunshine she could not see. She had lost her count of time; all things were phantasmagorical and unreal; all that she could real- ize was this one overpowering, crushing fact John was dead ! " Missie," said the ill-favored messenger below, fixing his one eye upon her poor sorrow-stricken face and yawning. There was no answer. <4 Missie," he said again, " is there any answer ? I must be going. I want to get back in time to see the Boers take Pretoria." Bessie looked at him vaguely. " Yours is a message that needs no answer," she said. " What is, is." The brute laughed. " No, I can't take a letter to the captain," he said ; " I saw Jan Vanzyl shoot him. He fell so," and he suddenly collapsed all in a heap on the path, in imitation of a man struck dead by a bullet. " I can't take him a message, missie," he went on, rising, " but one day you will be able to go and look for him yourself. I did not mean that; what I meant was that I could take a let- ter to Frank Muller. A live Boer is better than a dead Englishman; and Frank Muller will make a fine husband for any girl. If you shut your eyes you won't know the difference." "Go!" said Bessie, in a choked voice, and pointing her hand towards the avenue. Such was the suppressed energy in her tone that the man sprang to his feet, and as he did so, interpreting JESS. 245 her gesture as an encouragement to action, the old dog, Stomp, who had been watching him all the time, and oc- casionally giving utterance to a low growl of animosity, flew straight at his throat from the veranda. The dog, which was a heavy one, struck the man full in the chest and knocked him clean backwards. Down came dog and man on the drive together, and then ensued a terrible scene, the man cursing and shrieking and striking out at the dog, and the dog worrying the man in a fashion that he was not likely to forget for the remainder of his life. Bessie, whose energy seemed again to be exhausted, toek absolutely no notice of the fray, and it was at this juncture that her old uncle arrived upon the scene, togeth- er with two Kaffirs the same whom Bessie had been watching idling. "Hullo! hullo!" he halloaed out in his stentorian tones, " what is all this about ? Get off, you brute!" and what between his voice and the blows of the Kaffirs the dog was persuaded to let go his hold of the man, who stag- gered to his feet, severely mauled, and bleeding from half a dozen bites. For a moment he did not say anything, but picked up his stick. Then, however, having first seen that the dog was being held by the Kaffirs, he turned, his face stream- ing with blood, his one eye blazing with fury, and, shaking both his clinched fists at poor Bessie, broke into a scream of cursing: " You shall pay for this Frank Muller shall make you pay for it. I am his servant. I " " Get out of this, whoever you are," thundered old Silas, " or by Heaven I will let the dog on you again !" and he pointed to Stomp, who was struggling wildly with the two Kaffirs. The man paused and looked at the dog, and then, with a final shake of the fist, departed at a run down the avenue, turning once only to look if the dog were coming. 246 JESS. Bessie vacantly watched him go, taking no more notice of it than she had of the noise of the fighting. Then, as though struck by a thought, she turned and went into the sitting-room. " What is all this about, Bessie?" said her uncle, follow- ing her. " What does the man mean about Frank Muller ?" " It means, uncle dear," she said at last, in a voice that was something between a sob and a laugh, "that I am a widow before I am married. John is dead!" " Dead! dead!" said the old man, putting his hand to his forehead and turning round in a dazed sort of fashion "John dead!" " Read the letter," said Bessie, handing him Frank Mul- ler's missive. The old man took it and read it. His hand shook so much that it took him a long while to come to the end of it. "Good God!" he said at last, "what a blow! My poor Bessie," and he took her into his arms and kissed her. Suddenly a thought struck him. "Perhaps it is all one of Frank Muller's lies," he said, " or perhaps he made a mistake." But Bessie made no answer. For the time, at any rate, hope had left her. CHAPTER XXVI. FRANK MULLER'S FAMILIAR. THE study of the conflicting elements that go to make up a character like Frank Muller's, however fascinating it might prove, is not one that can be attempted in detail here. Such a character in its developed form is fortunate- ly practically impossible in a highly - civilized country. The dead weight of the law would crush it back to the level of the human mass around it. But those who have lived in the wild places of the earth will be acquainted with its prototypes, more especially in those places where a handful of a superior race rule over the dense thousands of an inferior. Solitudes are favorable to the production of strongly-marked individualities. The companionship of highly-developed men, on the contrary, whittles indi- vidualities away; the difference between their growth be- ing the difference between the growth of a tree on a plain and a tree in the forest. On the plain the tree takes the innate bent of its nature. It springs in majesty towards the skies; it spreads itself around, or it slants along the earth, just as nature intended that it should, and in ac- cordance with the power of the providential breath that bends it. In the forest it is different. There the tree grows towards the light, wherever the light may be. Forced to modify its natural habit in obedience to the pressure of circumstances over which it has no control, it takes such form and height as its neighbors will allow to it, all its energies being directed to' the preservation of life in any shape and at any sacrifice. Thus is it with us all. 248 JESS. Left to ourselves, or surrounded only *by the scrub of hu- manity, we become outwardly that which the spirit within would fashion us to, but, placed among our fellows, shac- kled by custom, restrained by law, pruned and bent by the force of public opinion, we grow as like one to another as the fruit-bushes on a garden wall. The sharp angles of our characters are fretted away by the friction of the crowd, and we become round and polished, and superfi- cially, at any rate, identical. We no longer resemble a solitary bowlder on a plain, but are as a stone built into the great edifice of civilized society. The place of a man like Frank Muller^s at the junction of the waters of civilization and barbarism. Too civilized to possess those savage virtues which, such as they are, represent the quantum of innate good Nature has thought fit to allow in the mixture man, and too barbarous to be subject to the tenderer restraints of cultivated society, he is at once strong in the strength of both and weak in their weaknesses. Animated by the spirit of barbarism, super- stition, and almost entirely destitute of the spirit of civiliza- tion, mercy, he stands on the edge of both and an affront to both, as terrific a moral spectacle as the world can afford. Had he been a little more civilized, with his power of evil trained by education and cynical reflection to defy the attacks of those spasms of unreasoning spiritual terror and unrestrainable passion that have their natural dwelling- place in the raw, strong mind of uncultivated man, Frank Muller might have broken upon the world as a Napoleon. Had he been a little more savage, a little further removed from the unconscious but present influence of a progressive race, he might have ground his fellows down and ruthless- ly destroyed them in the madness of his rage and lust, like an Attila or a T'Chaka. As it was, he was buffeted be- tween two forces he did not realize, even when they swayed him, and thus at every step in his path towards a supremacy of evil an unseen power made stumbling-blocks JESS. 249 of weaknesses which, if that path had been laid along a little higher or a little lower level in the scale of circum- stance, would themselves have been deadly weapons of overmastering force. See him, as with his dark heart filled up with fears, he thunders along from the scene of midnight death and mur- der his brain had not feared to plan and his hand to exe- cute. Onward his black horse strides, companioned by the storm, like a dark thought travelling on the wings of Night. lie does not believe in any God, and yet the ter- rible fears that spring up in his soul, born fungus-like from a dew of blood, take shape and form, and seem to cry aloud, " We are tlie messengers of the avenging God," He glances up. High on the black bosom of the storm the finger of the lightning is writing that awful name, and again and again the voice of the thunder reads it out aloud in spirit-shaking accents. He shuts his dazed eyes, and even the falling rhythm of his horse's hoofs beat out " There is a God! there is a God!" from the silent earth on which they strike. And so, on through the tempest and the night, flying from that which no man can leave behind. It was near midnight when Frank Muller drew rein at a w r retched mud hut perched by itself on the banks of the Vaal, and flanked on its rear by an equally miserable shed. The place was silent as the grave; not even a dog barked. " If that beast of a Kaffir is not here," he said aloud, " I will have him flogged to death. Hendrik! Ilendrik!'' As he called, a form rose up at his very feet, causing the weary horse to start back so violently that he almost threw his rider to the ground. " What in the name of the devil are you ?" almost shrieked Frank Muller, whose nerves, indeed, were in no condition to stand fresh shocks. 250 JESS. " It is me, baas," said the form, at the same time throw- ing off a gray blanket in which it was enveloped, and re- vealing the villainous countenance of the one-eyed witch- doctor who had taken the letter to Bessie, and who had for years been Muller's body-servant, and followed him about like a dog. " Curse you, you dog ! What do you mean by hiding up like that? It is one of your infernal tricks; be care- ful" tapping his pistol-case "or I shall one day put an end to you and your witchcraft together." " I am very sorry, baas," said the man, in a whine, " but half an hour ago I heard you coming. I don't know what is the matter with the air to-night, but it sounded as though twenty people were galloping after you. I could hear them all quite clear; first the big black horse, and then all those who came after, just as though they were hunting you; and so I came out and lay down to listen, and it was not till you were quite close that one by one the others stopped. Perhaps it was the devils who galloped." "Curse you, stop that wizard's talk," said Muller, his teeth chattering with fear and agitation. "Take the horse and clean and feed him well; he has galloped far, and we start at dawn. Stop ! tell me, where are the lights and the brandy ? If you have drunk the brandy I will flog you." " They are on the shelf on the left as you go in, baas, and there is flesh there, too, and bread." Muller swung himself from the saddle and entered the hut, pushing open the cranky, broken-hinged door with a kick. He found the box of Tandstickor matches, and, af- ter one or two false shots due chiefly to his shaking hand succeeded in getting fire and lighting a coarse dip such as the Boers make out of mutton fat. Near the candle was a bottle of peach-brandy two thirds full, and a tin pannikin and a jug of river water. Seizing the pannikin, he filled it half-full of spirit, added a little water, and JESS. 251 drank the mixture off. Then he took down the meat and bread from the same shelf, and, cutting some of each off with his clasp-knife, tried to eat. But he could not eat much, and soon gave up the attempt, consoling himself instead with the brandy. " Bah !" he said, " the stuff tastes like hell fire;" and he filled his pipe and sat smoking. Presently Hendrik came in to say that the horse was eating well, and was about to go again, when his master beckoned him to stop. The man was surprised, for Mul- ler was not generally fond of his society, except when he wanted to consult him or get him to exercise his pretend- ed art of divination; but the fact was that at that mo- ment Frank Muller would have been glad to consort with a dog. The events of the night had brought this terrible man, steeped in iniquity from his youth up, down to the level of a child frightened at the dark. For a while he sat in silence, the Kaffir squatted on the ground at his feet. Presently, however, the doses of powerful spirit took effect on him, and he began to talk more unguarded- ly than was his custom, even with his black "familiar," Hendrik. " How long have you been here ?" he asked of his re- tainer. 'About four days, baas." ' Did you take my letter to Om Croft's ?" ' Yah, baas. I gave it to the missie." ' What did she do ?" ' She read it, and then stood like this, holding on to the veranda pole;" and he opened his mouth and one eye, and twisted up his hideous countenance into a ghastly imita- tion of Bessie's sorrow-stricken face, catching hold of one of the posts that supported the hut to assist in the per- formance. " So she believed it ?" " Surely." 252 JESS. " What did she do, then ?" " She set the dog on me. Look here ! and here ! and here !" and he pointed to the half -healed scars left by Stomp's sharp fangs. Muller laughed a little. " I should have liked to have seen him worry you, you black cheat; it shows her spirit, too. I suppose you are angry, and want to have a re- venge ?" " Surely." " Well, who knows? Perhaps you shall; we are going there to-morrow." " So, baas ! I knew that before you told me." " We are going there, and we are going to take the place; and we are going to try Uncle Silas by court-mar- tial for flying an English flag, and if he is found guilty we are going to shoot him, Hendrik." "So, baas," said the Kaffir, rubbing his hands in glee; "but will he be found guilty?" " I don't know," murmured the white man, stroking his golden beard ; " that will depend upon what missie has to say; and upon the verdict of the court," he added, by way of an afterthought. " On the verdict of the court, ha ! ha !" chuckled his wicked satellite. " On the verdict of the court, yes ! yes ! and the baas will be president, ha ! ha ! One needs no witchcraft to guess the verdict. And if the court finds Uncle Silas guilty, who will do the shooting, baas ?" "I have not thought of that; the time has not come to think of it. It does not matter; anybody can carry out the sentence of the law." " Baas," said the Kaffir, " I have done much for you and had little pay. I have done ugly things. I have read omens and made medicines, and ' smelt out ' your enemies. Will you grant me a favor ? Will you let me shoot Om Croft if the court finds him guilty ? It is not much to ask, baas. I am a clever wizard, and deserve my pay." JESS. _'.-,:{ " Why do you- want to shoot him ?" " Because he flogged me once, years ago, for being a witch-doctor, and the other day he hunted me off the place. He-ides, it is nice to shoot a white man. I should like it better," he went on, with a smack of the lips, "if it were missie, who set the dog on me. I would " In a moment Frank Muller had the astonished ruffian by the throat, and was kicking and shaking him as though he were a toy. His brutal talk of Bessie had appealed to such manliness as he had in him, and, whatever his own wickedness may have been, he was too madly in love with the woman to let her name be taken in vain by a man whom, though he held his " magic " in superstitious reverence, he yet ranked lower than a dog. With his nerves strung to the highest possible state of tension, and half drunk as he was, Frank Muller was no more a person to be played with or irritated than a mad bull. "You black beast!" he yelled, "if you ever dare to mention her name again like that I will kill you, for all your witchcraft;" and he hurled him with such force up against the wall of the hut that the whole place shook. The man fell, lay for a moment groaning, and then crept from the hut on his hands and knees. Muller sat scowling from under his bent brows and watched him go. When he was gone he rose and fast- ened the .door behind him, and then suddenly burst into tears; the result, no doubt, of the mingled effects of the drink, mental and physical exhaustion, and the never-rest- ing passion (one can scarcely call it love) that ate away at his heart, like the worm that dieth not. " Oh, Bessie, Bessie !" he groaned, " I have done it all for you. Surely you cannot be angry when I have killed them all for you? Oh, my darling, my darling ! If you only knew how I love you ! Oh, my darling, my darling !" and in an agony of passion he flung himself down on the rough pallet in the corner of the hut and sobbed himself to sleep. 254 JESS. Somehow Frank Muller's evil doing did not make him any the happier, the fact of the matter being that to enjoy wickedness a man must be not only without conscience, but also without passion. Now Frank Muller was tor- mented with a very effective substitute for the first, su- perstition, and his life was literally overshadowed by the last, for the beauty of a girl possessed the power to domi- nate his wildest moods and inflict upon him torments that she herself was incapable of even imagining. At the first light of dawn Hendrik crept humbly into the hut and woke his master, and within half an hour they were across the Vaal and on the road to Wakker- stroom. As the light increased so did Muller's spirits rise, till at last, when the red sun came up in glory and swept away the shadows, he felt as though all the load of guilt and fear that lay at his heart had departed with them. He could see now that the two Boers being killed by a flash of lightning was a mere accident a happy accident in- deed; for, had it not been for that, he himself would have had to kill them, if he could not by any other means have got the warrant from them. As it was he had forgotten the warrant; but it did not matter much, he reflected. Nobody would be likely to find the bodies of the two men and horses under the lonely bank there. Certainly they would not be found till the aasvogels had picked them clean. They would be at work upon them by now. And if they were found it was probable that the paper would have rotted or blown away, or, at the worst, be so discol- ored as to be unreadable. For the rest, there was nothing to connect him with the murder, now that the two acces- sories were dead. Hendrik would prove an alibi for him. He was a useful man, Hendrik. Besides, who would be- lieve that it was a murder? Two men were escorting an Englishman to the river; somehow they became involved in a quarrel; the Englishman shot them, and they shot the JESS. 255 Englishman and his companion. Then the horses plunged into the Vaal and upset the cart, and there was an end of it. He could see now how well things had gone for him. He was practically placed beyond suspicion. And then he fell to thinking of the fruits of his honest labors, and his cheek grew warm with the mounting blood, and his eyes flashed with the fire of youth. In two days forty-eight hours at the outside, Bessie would be in his arms. He could not miscarry now; he was in absolute command there. Besides, Hendrik had read it in his omens long ago.* Mooifontein should be stormed on the morrow if that were necessary, and Om Silas Croft and Bessie should be taken prisoners; and then he knew how to put on the screw. That talk about shooting on the previ- ous night had been no idle threat. She should yield her- self to him or the old man should die, and then he would take her. There could be no legal consequences from that now that the British government was surrendering. It would be a meritorious act to shoot a rebel English- man. Yes, it was all plain sailing now. How long had it taken him to win her three years ? He had loved her for three years. Well, he would have his reward; and then, his mind at rest about his passion, he would turn it to those far-reaching, ambitious schemes of which the end was something like a throne. * It is by no means a very rare thing to meet white men in South Africa who believe more or less in the efficacy of native witchcraft, and who, al- though such a proceeding is forbidden by law, will at a pinch not hesitate to consult the witch-doctors themselves, especially when they are desirous of discovering some lost article. CHAPTER XXVII. SILAS IS CONVINCED. AT first Bessie was utterly prostrated by the blow that had fallen on her, but as time went on she revived a little, for hers was a sanguine nature with a great deal of elas- ticity about it. Troubles sink into the souls of some like water into a sponge, and weigh them down almost to the grave. From others they run off as the water would if poured upon marble, merely wetting the surface. She was neither the one nor the other of these, but rather of a sub- stance between the two a healthy, happy-hearted woman, full of beauty and vigor, made to bloom in the sunshine, not to languish in the shadow of some old grief. Women of her stamp do not die of broken hearts or condemn them- selves to lifelong celibacy as a sacrifice to the shade of the departed. If No. 1 is unfortunately removed, they, as a general rule, shed many a tear and suffer many a pang, and after a decent interval very sensibly turn their atten- tion to No. 2. Still it was a very pale-faced, quiet Bessie who went to and fro about the place after the visit of the one-eyed Kaffir. All her irritability had left her now; she no long- er jumped down her uncle's throat about his having de- spatched John to Pretoria. Indeed, on that very evening after the evil tidings came, he began to reproach himself bitterly in her presence for having sent her lover away, when she stopped him. " It is God's will, uncle," she said, quietly. " You only did what it was ordained that you should do." And then JESS. 257 she came and laid her sunny head upon the old man's shoulder and cried a little, and said that they two were all alone in the world now; and he comforted her in the best fashion that he could. It was a curious thing that they neither of them thought much of Jess when they talked thus about being alone. Jess was an enigma, a thing apart even from them. When she was there she was loved and allowed to go her own way; when she was not there she seemed to fade into outer darkness. A wall came down between her and her belongings. Of course they were both very fond of her, but simple-natured people are apt to shrink involuntarily from what they cannot under- stand, and these two were no exception. For instance, Bessie's affection for her sister was a poor thing compared to the deep and self-sacrificing, though often secret, love that her sister showered upon her. She loved her old un- cle far more dearly than she did Jess, and it must be owned that he returned the compliment with interest, and in those days of heavy trouble they drew nearer to each other even than before. But as time went on they both began to hope again. No further news of John's death reached them. Was it not possible, after all, that the whole story was an inven- tion? They knew that Frank Muller was not a man to hesitate at a lie if he had a purpose to gain, and they could guess in this case what the purpose was. His furious pas- sion for Bessie was no secret from either of them, and it struck them as at least possible that the tale of John's death might have been invented to forward it. It was not probable, more especially as he was not present to urge his suit, but it was possible, and however cruel sus- pense may be, it is at least less absolutely crushing than the dead weight of certainty. On Sunday it was just a week after the letter came Bessie was sitting after dinner on the veranda, when her quick ears caught what she took to be the booming of 17 258 JESS. heavy guns far away on the Drakensberg. She rose, and, leaving the house, climbed the hill behind it. On reach- ing the top she stood and looked at the great solemn stretch of mountains. Away, a little to her right, was a square, precipitous peak called Majuba, which was generally clothed in clouds. To-day, however, there was no mist, and it seemed to her that it was from the direction of this peak that the faint rolling sounds came floating on the breeze. But she could see nothing; the mountain seemed as tenantless and devoid of life as the day when it first towered up upon the face of things created. Presently the sound died away, and she returned, thinking that she must have been deceived by the echoes of some distant thunderstorm. Next day they learned from the natives that what she had heard was the sound of the big guns covering the flight of the British troops down the precipitous sides of Majuba Mountain. After this old Silas Croft began to lose heart a little. The run of disaster was so unrelieved that even his robust faith in the invincibility of the Eng- lish arms was shaken. " It is very strange, Bessie," he said, "very strange; but, never mind, it is bound to come right at last. Our gov- ernment is not going to knock under because they have suffered a few reverses." Then came a long four weeks of uncertainty. The air was thick with rumors, most of them brought by natives, one or two by passing Boers, to which, however, Silas Croft declined to pay any attention. Soon it became abundantly clear, however, that an armistice was con- cluded between the English and the Boers, but what were its terms or its object they were quite unable to decide. Silas Croft thought that the Boers, overawed by the ad- vance of an overwhelming force, meant to give in without further fighting; but Bessie shook her head. One day it was the same on which John and Jess had JESS. 250 left Pretoria a Kaffir brought news that the armistice was at an end, that the English were advancing up to the Nek in thousands, and were going to force it on the mor- row and relieve the garrisons a piece of intelligence that brought some of the old light back to Bessie's eyes. As for her uncle, he was jubilant. " The tide is going to turn at last, my love," he said, " and we shall have our innings. Well, it is time we should, after all the shame and loss and agony of mind we have gone through. Upon my word, for the last two months I have been ashamed to call myself an English- man. However, there is an end of it now. I knew that they would never give in and desert us," and the old man straightened his crooked back and slapped his chest, and looked as proud and gallant as though he were five-and- twenty instead of seventy. The rest of that day passed without any further news, and so did the following two, but on the next, which was March 23, the storm broke. About eleven o'clock in the forenoon Bessie was em- ployed upon her household duties as usual, or rather she had just finished them. Her uncle had returned from making his after-breakfast round upon the farm, and was standing in the sitting-room, his broad felt hat in one hand and a red pocket-handkerchief in the other, with which he was polishing his bald head, while he chatted to Bessie through the open door. " No news of the advance, Bessie dear ?" " No, uncle," she replied, with a sigh, and her blue eyes filling with tears, for she was thinking of one of whom there was also no news. " Well, never mind. These things take a little time, especially with our soldiers, who move so slowly. I dare say that there was some delay waiting for guns or ammu- nition or something. I expect that we shall hear some- thing by to-night " 260 JESS. He got as far as this, when suddenly the figure of Jantj6 appeared, flying up the passage in the extremity of terror and haste. " De Booren, baas, de Booren !" (The Boers, master, the Boers) he shouted. "The Boers are coming with a wagon, twenty of them or more, with Frank Muller at their head on his black horse, and Hans Coetzee, and the wizard with one eye with him. I was hiding behind a tree at the end of the avenue, and I saw them coming over the rise. They are going to take the place," and, without waiting to give any further explanations, he slipped through the house and hid himself up somewhere at the back out of the way, for Jantje, like most Hottentots, was a sad coward. The old man stopped rubbing his head and stared at Bessie, who was standing pale and trembling in the door- way. Just then he heard the patter of running feet on the drive outside, and looked out of the window. It was caused by the passing of some half-dozen Kaffirs who were working on the place, and who, on catching sight of the Boers, had promptly thrown down their tools and were flying to the hills. Even as they passed a shot was fired somewhere from the direction of the avenue, and the last of the Kaffirs, a lad of about twelve, suddenly threw up his hands and pitched forward on to his face, with a bullet between his shoulder-blades. Bessie heard the shout of " Good shot, good shot !" and the brutal laughter that greeted his fall, and the tramping of the horses as they came up the drive. " Oh, uncle !" she said, " what shall we do ?" The old man made no answer at the moment, but going to a rack upon the wall, reached down a Westley-Richards falling-block rifle that hung there. Then he sat down in a wooden arm-chair that faced the French window open- ing on to the veranda, and beckoned to her to come to him. " We will meet them so," he said. " They shall see JESS. 261 that we are not afraid of them. Don't be frightened, dear, they will not dare to harm us; they will be afraid of the consequences of harming English people." The words were scarcely out of his mouth when the cavalcade began to appear in front of the window, led, as Jantje had said, by Frank Muller on his black horse, ac- companied by Hans Coetzee on the fat pony, and the vil- lainous-looking Hendrik mounted on a nondescript sort of animal, and carrying a gun and an assegai in his hand. Behind these were a body of about fifteen or sixteen armed men, among whom Silas Croft recognized most of his neighbors, by whose side he had lived for years in peace and amity. Opposite the house they stopped and began looking about. They could not see into the room at once, on ac- count of the bright light outside and the shadow within. " I fancy you will find the birds flown, nephew," said the fat voice of Hans Coetzee. " They have got warning of your little visit." " They cannot be far," answered Muller. " I have had them watched, and know that they have not left the place. Get down, uncle, and look in the house, and you too, Hen- drik." The Kaffir obeyed with alacrity, tumbling out of his saddle with all the grace of a sack of coals, but the Boer hesitated. " Uncle Silas is an angry man," he ventured; " he might shoot if he found me poking about his house." " Don't answer me !" thundered Muller; " get down and do as I bid you !" " Ah, what a devil of a man !" murmured the unfortu- nate Hans as he hurried to obey. Meanwhile Hendrik the one-eyed had jumped upon the veranda and was peering through the windows. " Here they are, baas ; here they are !" he sang out ;" " the old cock and the pullet, too !" and he gave a kick to 262 JESS. the window, which, being unlatched, swung wide open, revealing the old man sitting there in his wooden arm- chair with Bessie standing at his side, his rifle on his knees, and holding his fair-haired niece by the hand. Frank Muller dismounted and came on to the veranda, and be- hind him crowded up a dozen or more of his followers. " What is it that you want, Frank Muller, that you come to my house with all these armed men ?" asked Silas Croft from his chair. " I call upon you, Silas Croft, to surrender to take your trial as a land betrayer and a rebel against the republic," was the answer. " I am sorry," he added, with a bow towards Bessie, on whom his eyes had been fixed all the time, " to be obliged to take you prisoner in the presence of a lady, but my duty gives me no choice." " I do not know what you mean," said the old man. " I am a subject of Queen Victoria and an Englishman. How, then, can I be a rebel against any republic? I am an Englishman, I say," he went on with rising anger, speak- ing so high that his powerful voice rang until every Boer there could hear it, " and I acknowledge the authority of no republics. This is my house, and I order you to leave it. I claim my rights as an Englishman " " Here," interrupted Muller, coldly, " Englishmen have no rights, except such as we choose to allow to them." " Shoot him !" cried a voice. " Treat him as Buskes treated Van der Linden at Pot- chefstroom !" cried another. " Yes, make him swallow the same pill that we gave to Dr. Barber," put in a third. " Silas Croft, are you going to surrender ?" asked Muller, in the same cold voice. "JVb/" thundered the old man in his English pride. "I surrender to no rebels in arms against the queen. I will shoot the first man who tries to lay a finger on me !" and he rose to his feet and lifted his rifle. JESS. 263 " Shall I shoot him, baas ? shall I shoot him ?" asked the one-eyed Hendrik, smacking his lips at the thought, and fiddling with the rusty lock of the old fowling-piece he carried. Muller, by way of answer, struck him across the face with the back of his hand. " Hans Coetzee," he said, " go and arrest that man." Poor Hans hesitated, as well he might. Nature had not endowed him with any great amount of natural courage, and the sight of his old neighbor's rifle-barrel made him feel positively sick. He hesitated and began to stammer excuses. "Are you going, uncle, or must I denounce you to the general as a sympathizer with Englishmen ?" asked Muller, in malice, for he knew the old fellow's weaknesses and cowardice, and was playing on them. " I am going. Of course I am going, nephew. Excuse me, a little faintness took me the heat of the sun," he babbled. " Oh, yes, I am going to seize the rebel. Per- haps one of those young men would not mind engaging his attention on the other side. He is an angry man I know him of old and an angry man with a gun, you know, dear nephew * " Are you going ?'' said his terrible master once more. " Oh, yes ! certainly, yes. Dear Uncle Silas, pray put down that gun, it is so dangerous. Don't stand there looking like a wild ox, but come up to the yoke. You are old, Uncle Silas, and I don't want to have to hurt you. Come now, come, come," and he held out his hand towards him as though he were a shy horse that he was endeavoring to beguile. "Hans Coetzee, traitor and liar that you are," said the old man, "if you come a single step nearer, by God! I will put a bullet through you !" " Go on, Hans; chuck a reim over his head; get him by the tail; knock him down with a yokeskei; turn the old 264 JESS. bull on his back !" shouted the crowd of scoffers from the window, taking very good care, however, to clear off to the right and left in order to leave room for the expected bullet. Hans positively burst into tears, and Muller, who was the only one who held his ground, caught him by the arm, and, putting out all his strength, swung him towards Silas Croft. For reasons of his own, he was anxious that the latter should shoot one of them, and he chose Hans Coetzee, whom he disliked and despised, for the sacrifice. Up went the rifle, and at that moment Bessie, who had been standing bewildered, made a dash at it, knowing that bloodshed could only make matters worse. As she did so it exploded, but not before she had shaken her uncle's arm, for instead of killing Hans, as it undoubtedly would otherwise have done, the bullet only cut his ear and then passed out through the open window-place. In an instant the room was filled with smoke. Hans Coetzee clapped his hand to his head, and commenced to yell with pain and terror, and in the confusion that ensued three or four men, headed by the Kaffir Hendrik, rushed into the room and sprang upon Silas Croft, who had retreated to the wall and was standing with his back against it, his rifle, which he had clubbed in both his hands, raised above his head. When his assailants got close to him they hesitated, for, aged and bent as he was, the old man looked like mischief. He stood there like a lion, and swung the rifle- stock about. Presently one of the men struck at him and missed him, but before he could retreat Silas brought down the stock of his rifle on his head, and down he went like an ox beneath a poleaxe. Then they closed on him, but for a while he kept them off, knocking down another man in his efforts. As he did so, the witch-doctor Hen- drik, who had been watching for his opportunity, brought JESS. 265 down the barrel of his old fowling-piece upon Silas's bald head and felled him. Fortunately the blow was not a very heavy one, or it would have caved his skull in. As it was, it only cut his head open and knocked him down. Thereon the whole mass of Boers, with the exception of Muller, who was standing watching, seeing that he was now defenceless, fell upon him, and would have kicked him to death had not Bessie precipitated herself upon him with a cry, and thrown her arms about him to protect him. Then Frank Muller interfered, fearing lest she should be hurt. Plunging into the fray with a curse, he exer- cised his great strength, throwing the men this way and that like ninepins, and finally dragging Silas to his feet again. "Come !" he shouted, "take him out of this;" and ac- cordingly, with taunts and obloquy, the poor old man, whose fringe of white locks was red with blood, was kicked and dragged and pushed on to the veranda, then off it on to the drive, where he fell over the body of the murdered Kaffir boy, and finally hauled up to the open space by the flagstaff, on which the Union Jack, that he had planted there some two months before, still waved bravely in the breeze. Here he sank down upon the grass, his back against the flagstaff, and asked faintly for some water. Bessie, who was weeping bitterly, and whose heart felt as though it were bursting with anguish and indigna- tion, pushed her way through the men, and, running to the house, got some in a glass and brought it to him. One of the brutes tried to knock it out of her hand, but she avoided him and gave it to her uncle, who drank it greed- %. " Thank you, love, thank you," he said; " don't be fright- ened, I ain't much hurt. Ah ! if only John had been here, and we had had an hour's notice, we would have held the place against them all." 266 JESS. Meanwhile one of the Boers, getting on the shoulders of another, had succeeded in untying the cord on which the Union Jack was bent and hauling it down. Then they reversed it and hoisted it half-mast high, and began to cheer for the republic. " Perhaps Uncle Silas does not know that we are a republic again now," said one of the men, a near neighbor of his own, in mockery. "What do you mean by a republic?" asked the old man. " The Transvaal is a British colony." There was a hoot of derision at this. " The English government has surrendered," said the same man. " The country is given up, and the British are to evacuate it in six months." " It is a lie !" said Silas, springing to his feet, " a cow- ardly lie ! Whoever says that the English have given up the country to a few thousand blackguards like you, and deserted its subjects and the loyals and the natives, is a liar a liar from hell !" There was another howl of mockery at this outburst, and when it had subsided Frank Muller stepped forward. "It is no lie, Silas Croft," he said; "and the cowards are not we Boers, who have beaten you again and again, but your soldiers, who have done nothing but run away, and your government, that follows the example of your soldiers. Look here" and he took a paper out of his pocket "you know that signature, I suppose; it is that of one of the triumvirate. Listen to what he says," and he read aloud: " WELL - BELOVED HEER MULLER, This is to inform you that, by the strength of our arms fighting for the right and freedom, and also by the cowardice of the British government, generals, and soldiers, we have by the will of the Almighty concluded this day a glorious peace with the enemy. The British government surrenders nearly everything except in the name. The republic is to be re- JESS. 267 established, and the soldiers who are left will leave the land within six months. Make this known to every one, and forget not to thank God for our glorious victories." The Boers shouted aloud, as well they might, and Bessie wrung her hands. As for the old man, he leaned against the flagstaff, and his gory head sank upon his breast as though he were about to faint. Then suddenly he lifted it, and, with clinched and quivering fists held high in the air, broke out into such a torrent of blasphemy and curs- ing that even the Boers fell back for a moment, dismayed into silence by the force of the fury wrung from his utter humiliation. . It was an appalling sight to see this good and God-fear- ing old man, his face bruised, his gray hairs dabbled with blood, and his clothes nearly rent from his body, stamp and reel to and fro, blaspheming his Maker, and the day that he was born; hurling execrations at his beloved country and the name of Englishman and the government that had deserted him, till at last nature gave out, and he fell in a fit, there, in the very shadow of his dishonored flag. CHAPTER XXVIH. BESSIE IS PUT TO THE QUESTION. MEANWHILE another little tragedy was being enacted at the back of the house. After the one-eyed witch-doc- tor Hendrik had knocked Silas Croft down and assisted in the pleasing operation of dragging him to the flagstaff, it had occurred to his villainous heart that the present would be a good opportunity to profit personally by the confu- sion, and possibly to add to the Englishman's misfortunes by doing him some injury on his own account. Accord- ingly, just before Frank Muller began to read the despatch announcing the English surrender, he slipped away into the house, which was now totally deserted, to see what he could steal. Passing into the sitting-room, he annexed Bessie's gold watch and chain, which was lying on the mantelpiece, a present that her uncle had made her on the Christmas Day before the last. Having pocketed this he proceeded to the kitchen, where there was a goodly store of silver forks and spoons that Bessie had been engaged in cleaning that morning, lying on the dresser ready to be put away. These he also transferred, to the extent of several dozens, to the capacious pockets of the tattered military great-coat that he wore. While doing so he was much disturbed by the barking of the dog Stomp, the same animal that had mauled him so severely a few weeks before, and who was now, as it happened, tied up in his kennel an old wine-barrel just outside the kitchen door. Hendrik peeped out of the window, and, having ascer- tained that the dog was secured, proceeded, with a diabol- JESS. 269 ical chuckle, to settle his account with the poor animal. He had left his gun behind on the grass, but he still held his assegai in his hand, and, going out of the kitchen door with it, he showed himself within a few feet of the ken- nel. The dog recognized him instantly, and went nearly mad with fury, making the most desperate efforts to break .its chain and get at him. For some moments he stood ex- citing the animal by derisive gestures and pelting it with stones, till at last, fearing that the clamor would attract attention, he suddenly transfixed it with his spear, and then, thinking that he was quite unobserved, sat down and snuffed and enjoyed the luxury of watching the poor beast's last agonies. But, as it happened, he was not quite alone, for, creep- ing along in the grass and rubbish that grew on the far- ther side of the wall, his brown body squeezed tightly against the brown stones so tightly that an unpractised eye would certainly have failed to observe it at a distance of a dozen paces was the Hottentot Jantje. Occasion- ally, too, he would lift his head above the level of the wall and observe the proceedings of the one-eyed man. Apparently he was undecided what to do, for he hesitated a little, and while he did so Hendrik killed the dog. Now Jantje had all a Hottentot's natural love for ani- mals, which is, generally speaking, as marked as is the Kaffir's callousness towards them, and he was particularly fond of the dog Stomp, which always went out walking with him on those rare occasions when he thought it safe or desirable to walk like an ordinary man, instead of creep- ing from bush to bush like a panther, or wriggling through the grass like a snake. The sight of the animal's death, therefore, raised in his black breast a very keen desire for vengeance on the murderer, if vengeance could be safely accomplished; and he paused to reflect if this could be done. As he did so Hendrik got up, gave the dead dog a kick, withdrew his assegai from the carcass, and then, as 270 JESS. though struck by a sudden desire to conceal the murder, undid the collar, and, lifting the dog in his arms, carried him with difficulty into the house and laid him under the kitchen table. This done he came out again to the wall, which was built of loose, unmortared stones, pulled one out without trouble, deposited the watch and the silver he had stolen in the cavity, and replaced the stone. Next, before Jantje could guess what he meant to do, he pro- ceeded to make it practically impossible for his robbery to be discovered, or, at any rate, very improbable, by light- ing a match, and, having first glanced round to see that nobody was looking, reaching up and applying it to the thick thatch with which the house itself was roofed, and of which the fringe just here was not more than nine feet from the ground. No rain had fallen at Mooifontein for several days, and there had been a hot sun and dry wind, and, as a result, the thatch was as dry as tinder. The light caught in a second, and in two more a thin line of fire was running up the roof. Hendrik paused, stepped a few paces back, resting his shoulders against the wall, immediately the other side of which was Jantje, and proceeded to chuckle aloud and rub his hands as he admired the results of his handiwork. This was too much for the Hottentot on the farther side. The provocation was too great, and so was the opportuni- ty. In his hand was the thick stick on which he was so fond of cutting notches. Raising it in both hands he brought the heavy knob down with all his strength upon the one-eyed villain's unprotected skull. It was a thick skull, but the knob prevailed against it and fractured it, and down went the estimable witch-doctor as though he were dead. Next, taking a leaf out of his fallen enemy's book, Jantje" slipped over the wall, and, seizing the senseless man, dragged him by one arm into the kitchen and rolled him under the table to keep company with the dead dog. JE8S. 271 Then, filled with a fearful joy, he slipped out, shutting and locking the door behind him, and crept round to a point of vantage in a little plantation seventy or eighty yards to the right of the house, whence he could watch the conflagration that he knew must ensue, for the fire had taken instant and irremediable hold, and also see what the Boers were doing. Ten minutes or so afterwards that amiable character Hendrik partially regained his senses, to find himself sur- rounded by a sea of fire, in which he perished miserably, not having power to move, and his feeble cries being to- tally swallowed up and lost in the fierce roaring of the flames, even had there been anybody there to hear them. And that was the very appropriate end of Hendrik and the magic of Hendrik. Down by the flagstaff the old man lay in his fit, with Bessie tending him and a posse of Boers standing round, smoking and laughing or lounging about with an air of lordly superiority well worthy of victors in possession. " Will none of you help me to take him to the house ?" she cried. "Surely you have ill-treated an old man enough." Nobody stirred, not even Frank Muller, who was gazing at her tear-stained face with a fierce smile playing round the corners of his clean-cut mouth, which his beard was trimmed to leave clear. "It will pass, Miss Bessie," he said; "it will pass. I have often seen such fits. They come from too much ex- citement, or too much drink Suddenly he broke off with an exclamation, and pointed to the house, from the roof of which pale curls of blue smoke were rising. " Who has fired the house ?" he shouted. " By Heaven ! I will shoot the man." The Boers started round and stared in astonishment, and as they did so the tinder-like roof burst into a broad 272 JESS. sheet of flame that grew and gathered breadth and height with an almost marvellous rapidity. Just then, too, a light breeze sprang up from over the hill at the rear of the house, as it sometimes did at this time of the day, and bent the flames over towards them in an immense arch of fire, so that the fumes and heat and smoke began to beat upon their faces. " Oh, the house is burning down!" cried Bessie, utterly bewildered by this new misfortune. "Here, you!" shouted Muller to the gaping Boers, "go and see if anything can be saved. Phew ! we must get out of this," and, stooping down, he picked up Silas Croft in his arms and walked off with him, followed by Bessie, towards the plantation on their left, which was the same where Jantje had taken refuge. In the centre of this plantation was a little glade surrounded by young orange and blue-gum trees. Here he put the old man down upon a bed of dead leaves and soft springing grass, and then hurried away, without a word, to the fire, only to find that the house was utterly unapproachable. In fifteen minutes, such was the rapidity with which the flames did their work upon the mass of dry straw and the wooden roof and floorings beneath, the whole of the interior of the house was a glowing, incandescent pile, and in half an hour it was completely gutted, nothing being left standing but the massive outer walls of stone, over which a dense col- umn of smoke hung like a pall. Mooifontein was a black- ened ruin; only the stables and outhouses, which were roofed with galvanized iron, being left uninjured. Frank Muller had not been gone five minutes when, to Bessie's joy, her uncle opened his eyes and sat up. "What is it? what is it?" he said. "Ah! I recollect. What is all this smell of fire? Surely they have not burned the place ?" " Yes, uncle," sobbed Bessie, " they have." The old man groaned. "It took me ten years to build, JESS. -;: bit by bit, almost stone by stone, and now they have de- stroyed it. Well, why not? God's will be done! Give me your arm, love; I want to get to the water. I feel faint and sick." She did as he bade her, sobbing bitterly. Within fif- teen yards, on the edge of the plantation, was a little spruit or runnel of water, and of this he drank copiously and bathed his wounded head and face. "There, love," he said, "don't fret; I feel quite myself again. I fear I made a fool of myself. I haven't learned to bear misfortune and dishonor as I should yet, and, like Job, I felt as though God had forsaken us. But, as I said, his will be done. What is the next move, I wonder ? Ah! we shall soon know, for here comes our friend Frank Mul- ler." " I am glad to see that you have recovered, uncle," said Muller, politely, " and I am sorry to have to tell you that the house is beyond help. Believe me, if I knew who fired it I would shoot him. It was not my wish or intention that the property should be destroyed." The old man merely bowed his head and made no an- swer. His fiery spirit seemed to be crushed out of him. " What is it your pleasure that we should do, sir ?" said Bessie at last. " Perhaps, now that we are ruined, you will allow us to go to Natal, which, I suppose, is still an English country?" " Yes, Miss Bessie, Natal is still English for the pres- ent; soon it will be Dutch; but I am sorry that I cannot let you go there now. My orders are to keep you both prisoners and to try your uncle by court-martial. The wagon-house," "he went on, quickly, " with the two little rooms on each side of it, has not been touched by the fire. I will have them made ready for you, and as soon as the heat is less you can go there;" and, turning to the men who had followed him, he gave some rapid orders, which two of them departed to carry out. 18 274 JESS. Still the old man made no comment; he did not even seem indignant or surprised; but poor Bessie was utterly prostrated and stood helpless, not knowing what to say to this terrible, remorseless man, who stood so calm and un- moved there before them. Frank Muller paused awhile to think, stroking his beard as he did so, then turned again and addressed the two re- maining men behind him. " You will keep guard over the prisoner," indicating Silas Croft, " and suffer none to communicate with him by word or sign. As soon as it is ready you will place him in the little room to the left of the wagon-house, and see that he is supplied with all he wants. If he escapes, or converses, or is ill-treated, I will hold you responsible. Do you understand?" " Yah, meinheer," was the answer. " Very good; be careful you do not forget. And now, Miss Bessie, I shall be glad if you can give me a word alone " "No," said Bessie; "no, I will not leave my uncle." " I fear you will have to do that," he said, with his cold smile. " I beg you to think again. It will be very much to your advantage to speak to me, and to your uncle's ad- vantage also. I should advise you to come." Bessie hesitated. She hated and mistrusted the man, as she had good reason to do, and feared to trust herself alone with him. While she still hesitated, the two Boers under whose watch and ward Muller had placed her uncle came and stood between him and her, cutting her off from him. Muller turned and walked a few paces ten or so to the right, and in desperation she followed him. He halted behind a bushy orange-tree of some eight years' growth. Overtaking him, she stood silent, waiting for him to be- gin. They were quite close to the others, but the roaring of the flames of the burning house was still sufficiently JESS. 275 loud to have drowned a much more audible conversation than theirs. " What is it you have to say to me ?" she said, at length, pressing her hand against her heart to still its beating. Her woman's instinct told her what was coming, and she was trying to nerve herself to meet it. " Miss Bessie," he said, slowly, " it is this. For years I have loved you and wanted to marry you. I again ask you to be my wife." "Mr. Frank Muller," she answered, her spirit rising to the occasion, " I thank you for your offer, and the only answer that I can give you is that I once and for all de- cline it." "Think," he said; "I love you as women are not often loved. You are always in my mind, by day and by night too. Everything I do, every step I go up the ladder, I have said and say to myself, ' I am doing it for Bessie Croft, whom I mean to marry.' Things have changed in this country. The rebellion has been successful. It was I who gave the casting vote for it that I might win you. I am now a great man, and shall one day be a greater. You will be great with me. Think what you say." " I have thought, and I will not marry you. You dare to come and ask me to many you over the ashes of my home, out of which you have dragged me and my poor old uncle! I hate you, I tell you, and I will not marry you! I had rather marry a Kaffir than marry you, Frank Muller, however great you may be." He smiled. " Is it because of the Englishman Niel that you will not marry me ? He is dead. It is useless to cling to a dead man." " Dead or alive, I love him with all my heart; and if he is dead it is at the hands of your people, and his blood rises up between us." " His blood has sunk down into the sand. He is dead, 276 JESS. and I am glad that he is dead. Once more, is that your last word ?" " It is." " Very good. Then I tell you that you shall marry me or" "Or what?" " Or your uncle, the old man you love so much, shall die!" " What do you mean ?" she said, in a choked voice. " What I say; no more and no less. Do you think that I will let one old man's life stand between me and my de- sire ? Never. If you will not marry me, Silas Croft shall be put upon his trial for attempted murder and for treason within an hour from this. Within an hour and a half he shall be condemned to die, and to-morrow at dawn he shall die, by warrant under my hand. I am commandant here, with power of life and death, and I tell you that he shall certainly die and his blood will be on your head." Bessie grasped at the tree for support. " You dare not," she said; "you dare not murder an innocent old man." "Dare not!" he answered; "you must understand me very ill, Bessie Croft, when you talk of what I dare not do for you. There is nothing," he added, with a thrill of his rich voice, " that I dare not do to gain you. Listen; prom- ise to marry me to-morrow morning. I will get a clergy- man here from Wakkerstroom, and your uncle shall go free as air, though he is a traitor to the land, and though he has tried to shoot a burgher after the declaration of peace. Refuse, and he dies. Choose now." " I have chosen," she answered, with passion. " Frank Muller, perjured traitor yes, murderer that you are, I will not marry you!" " Very good, very good, Bessie; as you will. But now one more thing. You shall not say that I have not warned you. If you persist in this your uncle shall die, but you JESS. 277 shall not escape me. You will not marry me? Well, even in this country, where I can do most things, I cannot force you to do that. But I can force you to be my wife in all but the name, without marriage; and this, when your uncle is stiff in his bloody grave, I will do. You shall have one more chance after the trial, and one only. If you refuse he shall die, and then, after his death, I shall take you away by force, and in a week's time you will be glad enough to marry me to cover up your shame, my pretty!" " You are a devil, Frank Muller, a wicked devil, but I will not be frightened into dishonor by you. I had rather kill myself. I trust to God to help me. I will have noth- ing to do with you ;" and she put her hands before her face and burst into tears. " You s look lovely when you weep," he said, with a laugh; "to-morrow I shall be able to kiss away your tears. As you will. Here, you !" he shouted to some men, who could be seen watching the progress of the dy- ing fire, " come here." Some of the men obeyed, and he proceeded to give in- structions in the same terms that he had given to the other two men who were watching old Silas, ordering Bessie to be instantly incarcerated in the corresponding little room on the other side of the wagon-house, and kept strictly from all communication from the outside world, adding, however, these words: " Bid the burghers assemble in the wagon-house for the trial of the Englishman, Silas Croft, for treason against the state and attempted murder of one of the burghers of the state in the execution of the commands of the tri- umvirate." . The two men advanced and seized Bessie by both arms. Then, faint and overpowered, she was led through the little plantation, over a gap in the garden wall, down past the scorched syringa - trees that lined the roadway that 278 JESS. ran along the hillside at the back of the still burning house, till they reached the wagon-house with the two lit- tle rooms which served respectively as a store and har- ness room. She was then thrust into the storeroom, which was half-full of loose potatoes and mealies in sacks, and the door locked upon her. There was no window to this room, and the only light in it was such as found its way through the chinks of the door and an air - hole in the masonry of the back wall. She sank on a half-emptied sack of mealies and tried to reflect. Her first idea was of escape, but she soon real- ized that that was a practical impossibility. The stout, yellow- wood door was locked upon her, and a sentry stood before it. She rose and looked through the air-hole in the rear wall, but there another sentry was posted. Then she turned her attention to the side wall that divided the room from the wagon-house. It was built of fourteen - inch green brickwork, and had cracked fi'om the shrinkage of the bricks, so that she could hear anything that went on in the wagon-house/and even see anybody who might bo moving about in it. But it was far too strong for her to hope to be able to break through, and even if she did, it would be useless, for there were armed men there also. Besides, how could she run away and leave her old uncle to his fate ? CHAPTER XXIX. CONDEMNED TO DEATH. HALF an hour passed in silence, which was only broken by the footsteps of the sentries as they tramped, or rather loitered, up and down, or by the occasional fall of some calcined masonry from the walls of the burned-out house. What between the smell of smoke and dust, the heat of the sun on the tin roof above, and of the red-hot embers of the house in front, the little room where Bessie was shut up was almost unbearable, and she felt as though she should faint there upon the sacks. Through one of the cracks in the wagon-house wall there blew a little draught, and by this crack Bessie placed herself, leaning her head against the wall so as to get the full benefit of the air and command a view of the place. Presently, several of the Boers came into the wagon-house and proceeded to pull some of the carts and timber out of it, leaving one buck- wagon, however, placed along the wall on the side oppo- site to the crack through which she was looking. Then they pulled the Scotch cart over to her side, laughing about something among themselves as they did so, and ar- ranged it with its back turned towards the wagon, sup- porting the shafts upon a wagon-jack. Next, out of the farther corner of the place, they extracted an old saw- bench and set it at the top of the open space. Then Bes- sie understood what they were doing; they were arranging a court, and the saw-bench was the judge's chair. So Frank Muller meant to carry out his threat! Shortly after this all the Boers, except those who were 280 JESS. keeping guard, filed into the place and began to clamber on the buck-wagon, seating themselves with much rough joking in a double row upon the broad side rails. Next appeared Hans Coetzee, his head bound up in a bloody handkerchief. He was pale and shaky, but Bessie could see that he was but little the worse for his wound. Then -came Frank Muller himself, looking white and very ter- rible, and as he came the men stopped their joking and talking. Indeed, it was curious to observe how strong was his ascendency over them. As a rule, the weak part of Boer organization is that it is practically impossible to get one Boer to pay deference to or obey another; but this was certainly not the case where Frank Muller was concerned. Muller advanced without hesitation to the saw-bench at the top of the space, and sat down on it, placing his rifle between his knees. After this there was a pause, and next minute Bessie saw her old uncle conducted in by two armed Boers, who halted in the middle of the space, about three paces from the saw-bench, and stood one on either side of their prisoner. At the same time Hans Coetzee climbed up into the Scotch cart, and Muller drew a note- book and a pencil from his pocket. " Silence !" he said. " We are assembled here to try the Englishman, Silas Croft, by court-martial. The charges against him are that by word and deed, notably by continuing to fly the English flag after the country had been surrendered to the republic, lie has traitorously rebelled against the government of the country. Further, that he has attempted to murder a burgher of the republic by shooting at him with a loaded rifle. If these charges are proved against him he will be liable to death, by mar- tial law. Prisoner Croft, what do you answer to the charges against you ?" The old man, who seemed very quiet and composed, looked up at his judge and then replied: JESS. 281 " I am an English subject. I only defended my house after you had murdered one of my servants. I deny your jurisdiction over me, and I refuse to plead." Frank Muller made some notes in his pocket-book, and then said, "I overrule the prisoner's objection as to the jurisdiction of the court. As to the charges, we will now take evidence. Of the first charge no evidence is needed, for we all saw the flag flying. As to the second, Hans Coetzee, the assaulted burgher, will now give evidence. Hans Coetzee, do you swear in the name of God and the republic to speak the truth, the whole truth, and nothing but the truth ?" " Almighty, yes," answered Hans, from the cart on which he had enthroned himself, " so help me, the dear Lord." " Proceed then." " I was entering the house of the prisoner to arrest him, in obedience to your worshipful commands, when the prisoner lifted a gun and fired at me. The bullet from the gun struck me upon the ear, cutting it and putting me to much pain and loss of blood. That is the evidence I have to give." "That's right; that is not a lie," said some of the men on the wagon. " Prisoner, have you any question to ask the witness ?" said Muller. "I have no question to ask; I deny your jurisdiction," said the old man, with spirit. "The prisoner declines to question the witness, and again pleads to the jurisdiction a plea which I have over- ruled. Gentlemen, do you desire to hear any further evi- dence ?" "No, no." " Do you then find the prisoner guilty of the charges laid against him ?" " Yes, yes," from the wagon. Muller made a further note in his book and then went on: 282 JESS. " Then, the prisoner having been found guilty of high- treason and attempted murder, the only matter that re- mains is the question of the punishment required to be meted out by the law to such wicked and horrible of- fences. Every man will give his verdict, having duly con- sidered if there is any way by which, in accordance with the holy dictates of his conscience, and with the natural promptings to pity in his heart, he can extend mercy to the prisoner. As commandant and president of the court the first vote lies with me; and I must tell you, gentle- men, that I feel the responsibility a very heavy one in the sight of God and my country; and I must also warn you not to be influenced or overruled by my decision, who am, like you, only a man, liable to err and be led away." "Hear, hear," said the voices on the wagon, as he paused to note the effect of his address. " Gentlemen and burghers of the state, my natural promptings in this case are towards pity. The prisoner is an old man, who has lived many years among us like a brother. Indeed, he is a ' voortrekker,' and, though an Englishman, one of the fathers of the land. Can we con- demn such a one to a bloody grave, more especially as he has a niece dependent upon him ?" " No, no !" they cried, in answer to this skilful touch upon the better strings in their nature. " Gentlemen, those sentiments do you honor. My own heart cried but now ' No, no. Whatever his sins have been, let the old man go free.' But then came reflection. True, the prisoner is old; but should not age have taught him wisdom ? Is that which is not to be forgiven to youth to be forgiven to the ripe experience of many years ? May a man murder and be a traitor because he is old ?" " No, certainly not !" cried the chorus on the wagon. " Then there is the second point. He was a ' voortrek- ker' and a father of the land. Should he not therefore have known better than to betray it into the hands of the JESS. 283 cruel, godless English ? For, gentlemen, though that charge is not laid against him, we must remember, as throwing a light upon his general character, that the pris- oner was one of those vile men who betrayed the land to Shepstone. Is it not a most cruel and unnatural thing that a father should sell his own child into slavery ? that a father of the land should barter away its freedom? Therefore on this point, too, does justice temper mercy." "That is so," said the chorus with particular enthusi- asm, most of them having themselves been instrumental in bringing the annexation about. " Then one more thing: this man has a niece, and it is the care of all good men to see that the young should not be left destitute and friendless, lest they should grow up bad and become enemies to the well-being of the state. But in this case that will not be so, for the farm will go to the girl by law; and, indeed, she will be well rid of so desperate and godless an old man. " And now, having set my reasons towards one side and the other before you, and having warned you fully to act each man according to his conscience, I give my vote. It is " and in the midst of the most intense silence he paused and looked at old Silas, who never even quailed " it is death.' 1 '' There was a little hum of conversation, and poor Bessie, surveying the scene through the crack in the storeroom wall, groaned in bitterness and despair of heart. Then Hans Coetzee spoke. It cut his bosom in two, he said, to have to say a word against one to whom he had for many years been as a brother. But, then, what was he to do ? The man had plotted evil against their land, the dear land that the dear Lord had given them, and which they and their fathers had on various occa- sions watered, and were still continuing to water, with their blood. What could be a fitting punishment for so black-hearted a traitor, and how would it be possible to 284 JESS. insure the better behavior of other d d Englishmen, unless they inflicted that pxmishment ? There could, alas ! be but one answer though, personally speaking, he ut- tered it with many tears and that answer was death. After this there were no more speeches, but each man voted according to his age, upon his name being called by the president. At first there was a little hesitation, for some among them were fond of old Silas, and loath to destroy him. But Frank Muller had played his game very well, and, notwithstanding his appeals to their inde- pendence of judgment, they knew full surely what would happen to him who gave his vote against the president. So they swallowed their better feelings with all the ease for which such swallowing is noted, and one by one ut- tered the fatal word. When they had all done Frank Muller addressed Silas: "Prisoner, you have heard the judgment against you. I need not now recapitulate your crimes. You have had a fair and open trial by court-martial, such as our law di- rects. Have you anything to say why sentence of death should not be passed upon you in accordance with the judgment ?" Old Silas looked up with flashing eyes, and shook back his fringe of white hair like a lion at bay. " I have nothing to say. If you will do murder, do it, black-hearted villain that you are ! I might point to my gray hairs, to my murdered servant, to my home that took me ten years to build, destroyed by you ! I might tell you how I have been a good citizen and lived peaceably and neighborly in the land for more than twenty years ay, and done kindness after kindness to many of you who ai*e going to murder me in cold blood ! But I will not. Shoot me if you will, and may my death lie heavy on your heads. This morning I would have said that my country would avenge me; I cannot say that now, for England has deserted us and I have no country. .There- JESS. 285 fore I leave the vengeance in the hands of God, who never fails to avenge, though sometimes he waits for long to do it. I am not afraid of you. Shoot me now if you like. I have lost my honor, my home, and my country; why should I not lose my life also ?" Frank Muller fixed his cold eyes upon the old man's quivering face and smiled a dreadful smile of triumph. " Prisoner, it is now my duty, in the name of God and the republic, to sentence you to be shot to-morrow at dawn, and may the Almighty forgive you your wicked- ness and have mercy upon your soul. "Let the prisoner be removed, and let a man ride full speed to the empty house on the hillside, where the Eng- lishman with the red beard used to live, one hour this side of Wakkerstroom, and bring back with him the clergy- man he will find waiting there, that the prisoner may be offered his ministrations. Also let two men be set to dig the prisoner's grave in the burial-place at the back of the house.' The guards laid their hands upon the old man's shoul- ders, and he turned and w r ent with them without a word. Bessie watched him go, through her crack in the wall, till the dear old head with its fringe of white hairs and the bent frame were no more visible, and then, at last, her faculties, benumbed and exhausted by the horrors she was passing through, gave out, and she fell forward in a faint, there upon the sacks. Meanwhile Muller was writing the death-warrant on a sheet of his pocket-book. At the foot he left a space for his own signature, but he did not sign it, for reasons of his own. What he did do was to pass it round to be countersigned by all who had formed the court in this mock trial, his object being to implicate every man there present in the judicial murder by the direct and incontro- vertible evidence of his sign - manual. Now, Boers are simple pastoral folk, but they are not quite so simple as 286 JESS. not to see through a move like this, and thereon followed a very instructive little scene. They had, to a man, been willing enough to give their verdict for the old man's exe- cution, but they were by no means ready to record it in black and white. As soon as ever they understood the object of their feared and respected commandant, a gen- eral desire manifested itself to make themselves respec- tively and collectively scarce. Suddenly they found that they had business outside, and something like a general attempt at a bolt ensued. Several of them had already tumbled off their extemporized jury box, and, headed by the redoubtable Hans, were approaching the entrance to the wagon-house, when Frank Muller perceived their de- sign, and roared out in a voice of thunder: " Stop ! Not a man leaves this place till the warrant is signed." Instantly the men halted, and began to look innocent and to converse. " Hans Coetzee, come here and sign," said Muller again, whereon that unfortunate advanced with as good a grace as he could muster, murmuring to himself curses, not loud but deep, upon the head of " that devil of a man, Frank Muller." However, there was no help for it, so, with a sickly smile, he put his name to the fatal document in big, shaky letters. Then Muller called another man, who instantly tried to get out of it on the ground that his education had been neglected and that he could not write, an excuse that availed him little, for Frank Muller quietly wrote his name for him, leaving a space for his mark. After that there was no more trouble, and in five minutes the entire back of the warrant was covered with the scrawling sig- natures of the various members of the court. One by one the men went, till at last Muller was left alone, seated there on the saw-bench, his head sunk upon his breast, holding the warrant in one hand, while with JESS. 287 the other he stroked his golden beard. Presently he stopped stroking his beard and sat for some minutes per- fectly still, so still that he might have been carved in stone. By this time the afternoon sun had got behind the hill and the deep wagon-house was full of shadow that seemed to gather round him and invest him with a sombre, mysterious grandeur. He looked like a King of Evil, for Evil has her princes as well as Good, and stamps them with her imperial seal of power, and crowns them with a diadem of her own; among these Frank Muller was surely great. A little smile of triumph played upon his beauti- ful, cruel face, a little light danced within his cold eyes and ran down the yellow beard. At that moment he might have sat for a portrait of his master, the devil. Presently he awoke from his reverie. " I have her !" he said to himself ; " I have her in a vise ! She cannot es- cape me; she cannot let the old man die ! Those curs have served my purpose well ; they are as easy to play on as a fiddle, and I am a good player. Yes, and now we are getting to the end of the tune." CHAPTER XXX. "WE MUST PABT, JOHN." JESS and her companion stood in awed silence and gazed at the blackening and distorted corpses of the thunder- blasted Boers. Then they went past them to the tree which grew some ten paces or more on the other side of the place of destruction. There was some little difficulty in getting the horses past the corpses, but at last they came with a wheel and a snort of suspicion, and were tied up to the tree by John. Meanwhile Jess took some of the hard-boiled eggs out of the basket and vanished, remark- ing that she was going to take her clothes off and dry them in the sun while she ate her breakfast, and she ad- vised him to do the same. Accordingly, as soon as she was well out of sight behind the shelter of the rocks, she proceeded to get out of her sodden garments, in itself a task of no little difficulty. Then she wrung them out and spread them one by one on the flat, water-washed stones around, which were by now thoroughly warmed with the sun. Next she went down a few paces to a pool under the shadow of the bank, in the rock-bed of the river, and bathed her bruises and washed the sand and mud from her hair and feet. After this she came and sat herself on a slab of flat stone out of the glare of the sun, and ate her breakfast of hard-boiled eggs, reflecting meanwhile on the position in which she found herself. For her heart was very sore and heavy, and she could find it in her to wish that she were lying somewhere beneath those rushing wa- ters. She had calculated on death, and now she was not JESS. 289 dead, and she and her shame and her trouble might yet live for many a year. She was like one who in her sleep had seemed to soar on angels' wings out into the airy depths, and then awakened with a start to find that she had tumbled from her bed. All the heroic scale, all the more than earthly depth of passion, all the spiritualized desires that had sprung into being beneath the shadow of the approaching end, had come down to the common level of an undesirable attachment, along which she must now drag her weary feet for many a year. Nor was that all. She had been false to Bessie, and more, she had broken Bessie's lover's troth. She had tempted him and he had fallen, and now he was as bad as she. Death would have justified all this; she would never have done it had she thought she was going to live; but now Death had cheated her, as he has a way of doing with people to whom his presence is more or less desirable, and left her to cope with the spirit she had invoked when his sword was quivering over her. What would be the end of it, supposing they escaped? What could be the end except misery ? It should go no further, far as it had gone, that she swore; no, not if it broke her heart and his too. The conditions were altered again, and the memory of those dreadful and wonderful hours when they two swung upon the raging river and ex- changed their undying troth, with the grave for their al- tar, must be a memory and nothing more. It had risen on their lives like some beautiful yet terrible dream-image of celestial joy, and now like a dream it must vanish. And yet it was no dream, except in so far as all her life was a dream and a vision, a riddle of which glimpses of the an- swer came as rarely as gleams of sunshine on a rainy day. Alas ! it was no dream; it was a portion of the living, breathing past, that having once been is immortal in its every part and moment, incarnating as it does the very spirit of immortality, an utter incapacity to change. As 19 290 JESS. the act was, as the word had been spoken, so would act and word be forever and forever. And now this undying thing must be caged and cast about with the semblance of death and clouded over with the shadow of an unreal for- getf illness. Oh, it was bitter, very bitter ! What would it be now to go away, right away from him, and know him married to her own sister, the other woman with a prior right ? What would it be to think of Bessie's sweetness slowly creeping into her empty place and filling it, of Bes- sie's gentle, constant love covering up the recollection of their wilder passion, pervading it and covering it up as the twilight slowly pervades and covers up the day, till at last perhaps it was all blotted out and forgotten in the night of f orgetf ulness ? And yet it must be so, she was determined that it should be so. Ah, that she had died then with his kiss upon her lips ! Why had he not let her die ? And the poor girl shook her damp hair over her face and sobbed in the bit- terness of her heart, as Eve might have sobbed when Adam reproached her. But, naked or dressed, sobbing will not mend matters in this sad world of ours, a fact that Jess had the sense to realize; so she presently wiped her eyes with her hair, having nothing else handy to wipe them with, and set to work to get into her partially-dried garments again, a process calculated to irritate the most fortunate and happy- minded woman in the whole wide world. Certainly in her present frame of mind those damp, bullet-torn clothes drove Jess nearly wild, so much so that had she been a man she would probably have sworn a consolation that her sex denied her. Fortunately she had a travelling- comb in her pocket, with which she made shift to do her curling hair, if hair can be said to be done when one has not a hairpin or even a bit of string to fasten it up with. Then, after a last and frightful struggle with her sod- den boots, that seemed to take almost as much out of her JESS. 291 as her roll at the bottom of the Vaal, she rose and walked back to the spot where she had left John an hour before. He was employed, when she reached him, in saddling up the second of the two grays, with the saddles and bridles that he had removed from the carcasses of the horses which the lightning had destroyed. " Hullo, Jess, you look quite smart. Have you dried your clothes?" he said. "I have after a fashion." " Yes," she answered. He looked at her. " Why, dearest, you have been cry- ing. Come, things are black enough, but it is no use cry- ing. At any rate, we have got off with our lives so far." " John," said Jess, sharply, " there must be no more of that. Things have changed. We were dead last night; now we have come to life again. Besides," she added, with a ghost of a laugh, " perhaps you will see Bessie to- morrow. I should think we ought to have got to the end of our misfortunes." John's face fell, as the recollection of the impossible and most tragic position in which they were placed, phys- ically and morally, swept into his mind. " My dearest Jess," he said, " what is to be done ?" She stamped her foot, in the bitter anguish of her heart. " I told you," she said, " that there must be no more of that. What are you thinking about ? From to-day we are dead to each other. I have done with you and you with me. It is your own fault: you should have let me die. Oh, John, John," she wailed out, " why did you not let me die ?' Why did we not both die ? We should have been happy now, or asleep. We must part, John, we must part; and what shall I do without you? what shall I do ?" Her distress was very poignant, and it affected him so much that for a moment he could not trust himself to an- swer her. " Would it not be best to make a clean breast of it to 292 JESS. Bessie ?" he said at last. " I should feel a blackguard for the rest of my life, but upon my word I have a mind to do it." " No, no," she cried, passionately, " I will not have you do it ! You shall swear to me that you will never breathe a word to Bessie. I will not have her happiness destroyed. We have sinned, we must suffer; not Bessie, who is inno- cent and only takes her right. I promised my dear moth- er to look after Bessie and protect her, and I will not be the one to betray her never, never! You must marry her and I must go away. There is no other way out of it." John looked at her, not knowing what to say or do. A sharp pang of despair went through him as he watched the passionate, pale face, and the great eyes dim with tears. How was he to part from her ? He put out his arms to take her in them, but she pushed him away almost fiercely. " Have you no honor ?" she cried. " Is it not all hard enough to bear without your tempting me ? I tell you it is all done with. Finish saddling that horse and let us start. The sooner we get off the sooner it will be over, unless the Boers catch us again and shoot us, which for my own part I devoutly hope they may. You must make up your mind to remember that I am nothing but your sister-in-law. If you will not remember it, then I shall ride away and leave you to go your way and I will go mine." John said no more. Her determination was as crushing as the cruel necessity that dictated it. What was more, his own reason and sense of honor approved of it, what- ever his passion might prompt to the contrary. As he turned wearily to finish saddling the horses he almost re- gretted with Jess that they had not both been drowned and got it over. Of course the only saddles that they had were those be- longing to the dead Boers, which was very awkward for a JESS. 293 lady. Luckily for herself, however, Jess could, from con- stant practice, ride almost as well as though she had been trained to the ring, and was even capable of balancing herself without a pommel on a man's saddle, having often and often ridden round the farm in that way. So soon as the horses were ready she astonished John by clambering into the saddle of the older and steadier animal, placing her foot in the stirrup-strap and announcing that she was ready to start. " You had better ride some other way," said John. " It isn't usual, I know, but you will tumble off." " You shall see," she said, with a little laugh, putting the horse into a canter as she spoke. John followed her on the other horse, and noted with amazement that she sat as straight and steady on her slippery seat as though she were on a hunting-saddle, keeping herself from falling by an instinctive balancing of the body which was very curi- ous to notice. When they got well on to the plain they halted to consider their route, and as they did so Jess pointed to the long lines of vultures descending to feast on their would-be murderers. If they went down the riv- er it would lead them to Standerton,and there they would be safe if they could get into the town, which was garri- soned by English. But then, as they had gathered from the conversation of their escort, Standerton was closely in- vested by the Boers, and to try and pass through their lines was more than they dared to do. It was true that they still had the pass signed by the Boer general, but after what had occurred they were not unnaturally somewhat sceptical about the value of passes, and certainly unwilling to put their efficacy to the proof. So, after due consider- ation, they determined to avoid Standerton and ride in the opposite direction till they found a practicable ford of the Yaal. Fortunately, they both of them had a very fair idea of the lay of the land; and, in addition to this, John possessed a small compass fastened to his watch-chain, 294 JESS. which would enable him to steer a pretty correct course across the veldt a fact that would render them indepen- dent of the roads. On the roads they would run a mo- mentary risk, if not a certainty, of detection. But on the wide veldt the chances were they would meet no living creature except the wild game. Should they come across houses they would be able to avoid them, and their male inhabitants would probably be far away from home on business connected with the war. Accordingly they rode ten miles or more along the bank without seeing a soul, when they reached a space of bub- bling, shallow water that looked fordable. Indeed, an in- vestigation of the banks revealed the fact that a loaded wagon had passed the river at no distant date, perhaps a week before. "That is good enough," said John ; "we will try it." And without further ado they plunged in. In the centre of the stream the water was strong and deep, and for a few yards took the horses off their legs, but they struck out boldly till they got their footing again; and after that there was no more trouble. On the farther side of the river John took counsel with his compass, and steered a course straight for Mooifontein. At midday they offsaddled the horses for an hour by some water, and ate a small portion of their remaining food. Then they upsaddled and went on across the lonely, desolate veldt. No human being did they see all that long day. The wide country was only tenanted by great herds of thun- dering game that came rushing past like squadrons of cavalry, or here and there by coteries of vultures, hissing and fighting furiously over some dead buck. And so at last twilight came on and found them alone in the wilderness. " Well, what is to be done now ?" said John, pulling up his tired horse. " It will be dark in half an hour." Jess slid from her saddle as she answered, " Get off and go to sleep, I suppose." JESS. 295 She was quite right; there was absolutely nothing else that they could do : so John set to work and hobbled the horses, tying them together for further security, for it would be a dreadful thing if they were to stray. By the time that this was done the twilight was gathering into night, and the two sat down to contemplate their surround- ings with feelings akin to despair. So far as the eye could reach there was nothing to be seen but a vast stretch of lonely plain, across which the night wind blew in dreary gusts, making the green grass ripple like the sea. There was absolutely no shelter to be had, nor anything to break the monotony, unless it were a couple of ant-heaps about five paces apart. John sat down on one of the ant-heaps, and Jess took up her position on the other, and there they remained, like pelicans in the wilderness, watching the daylight fade out of the day. " Don't you think that we had better sit together ?" sug- gested John, feebly. " It would be wanner, you see." " No, I don't," answered Jess, snappishly. " I am very comfortable as I am." Unfortunately, however, this was not the exact truth, for poor Jess's teeth were already chattering with cold. Soon, indeed, they found that the only way to keep their blood moving was, weary as they were, to continually tramp up and down. After an hour and a half or so of this, the breeze dropped and the temperature got more suit- able to their lightly-clad, half-starved, and almost exhaust- ed bodies. Then the moon came up, and the hyenas, or wolves, or some such animals, came up also and howled round them though they could not see them. These hy- enas proved more than Jess's nerves could stand, and she at last condescended to ask John to share her ant-heap; there they sat, shivering in each other's arms, throughout the livelong night. Indeed, had it not been for the warmth they gathered from each other, it is probable that they would have fared even worse than they did ; for, though 296 JESS. the days were hot, the nights were now beginning to get cold on the high veldt, especially when, as at present, the air had recently been chilled by the passage of a heavy tempest. Another drawback to their romantic situation was that they were positively soaked by the falling dew. There they sat, or rather cowered, for hour after hour without sleeping, for sleep was impossible, and almost without speaking; and yet, notwithstanding the misery of their circumstances, not altogether unhappy, since they were united in their misery. At last the eastern sky be- gan to turn gray, and John rose and shook the dew from his hat and clothes, and limped off as well as his half- frozen limbs would allow, to catch the horses, which were standing together some yards away, looking huge and ghostlike in the mist. By sunrise he had managed to sad- dle them up, and they started once more. This time, how- ever, he had to lift Jess on to the saddle. About eight o'clock they halted and ate their little re- maining food, and then proceeded slowly enough, for the horses were almost as tired as they were, and it was nec- essary to husband them if they were to reach Mooifontein by dark. At midday they halted for an hour and a half, and then, feeling almost worn out, went on once more, reckoning that they could not be more than sixteen or seventeen miles from Mooifontein. It was about two hours after this that a catastrophe happened. The course they were following ran down the side of one land wave, then across a little swampy sluit, and up the opposite slope. They crossed the swampy ground, walked their horses up to the crest of the opposite rise, and found themselves face to face with a party of armed and mount- ed Boers. CHAPTER XXXI. JE88 FINDS A FRIEND. THE Boers swooped down on them with a shout, like a hawk on a sparrow. John pulled up his horse and drew his revolver. "Don't, don't !" cried Jess; " our only chance is to be civil;" whereon, thinking better of the matter, he replaced it, and wished the leading Boer good-day. "What are you doing here?" asked the Dutchman; whereon Jess explained that they had a pass which John promptly produced and were proceeding to Mooi- fontein. "Ah, Om Crofts !" said the Boer as he took the pass; " you are likely to meet a burying-party there," and at the time Jess did not understand what he meant. He eyed the pass suspiciously all over, and then asked how it came to be stained with water. Jess, not daring to tell the truth, said that it had been dropped into a puddle. The Boer was about to return it, when suddenly his eye fell upon Jess's saddle. " How is it that the girl is riding on a man's saddle ?" he asked. ." Why, I know that saddle; let me look at the other side. Yes, there is a bullet-hole through the flap. That is Swart Dirk's saddle. How did you get it ?" " I bought it from him," answered Jess, without a mo- ment's hesitation. " I could get nothing to ride on." The Boer shook his head. " There are plenty of saddles in Pretoria," he said, " and these are not the days when a man sells his saddle to an English girl. Ah ! and that 298 JESS. other is a Boer saddle too. No Englishman has a saddle- cloth like that. This pass is not sufficient," he went on, in a cold tone; "it should have been countersigned by the local commandant. I must arrest you." Jess began to make further excuses, but he merely re- peated, " I must arrest you," and gave some orders to the men with him. " We are in for it again," she said to John; " and there is nothing for it but to go." " I sha'n't mind so much if only they will give us some grub," said John, philosophically. " I am half starved." " And I am half dead," said Jess, with a little laugh. "I wish they would shoot us and have done with it." . " Come, cheer up, Jess," he answered ; " perhaps the luck is going to change." She shook her head with an air of one who expects the worst, and then some gay young spirits among the Boers came up and made things pleasant by an exhibition of their polished wit, which they chiefly exercised at the ex- pense of poor Jess, whose appearance was, as may well be imagined, exceedingly wretched and forlorn ; so much so that it would have moved the pity of most people. But these specimens of the golden youth of a simple pastoral folk found in it a rich mine of opportunities. They asked her if she would not like to ride straddle-legged, and if she had bought her dress from an old Hottentot who had done with it, and if she had been rolling about tipsy in the veldt to get all the mud on it; and generally availed themselves of this unparalleled occasion to be witty at the expense of an English lady in sore distress. Indeed, one gay young dog, called Jacobus, was proceeding from jokes linguistic to jokes practical. Perceiving that Jess only kept her seat on the man's saddle by the exercise of a cu- rious faculty of balance, it occurred to him that it would be a fine thing to upset it and make her fall upon her face. Accordingly, with a sudden twist of the rein he brought JESS. 299 his horse sharply against her wearied animal, nearly throw- ing it down; but she was too quick for him, and saved herself by catching at the mane. Jess said nothing; in- deed, she made no answer to her tormentors, and fortu- nately John understood very little of what they were say- ing. Presently, however, the young Boer made another attempt, putting out his hand to give her a sly push; and, as it happened, John saw it, and the sight of the indignity made the blood b.oil in his veins. Before he could reflect on what he was doing he was alongside of the man, and, catching him by the throat, had hurled him backwards over his crupper with all the force he could command. The man fell heavily upon his shoulders, and instantly there was a great hubbub. John drew his revolver, and the other Boers raised their rifles, and Jess thought that there was an end of it, and put her hand before her face, hav- ing first thanked John for avenging the insult with a swift flash of her beautiful eyes. And, indeed, in another sec- ond it would have been all over had not the elder man who had taken the pass interposed; the fact being that he had witnessed the proceedings that led to his follower's dis- comfiture, and, being a decent man at bottom, had disap- proved of them. " Leave them alone and put down those guns," he shout- ed. " It served Jacobus right; he was trying to push the girl from the horse. Almighty ! it is not wonderful those English call us brute beasts when you boys do such things. Put down your guns, I say, and one of you help Jacobus up. He looks as sick as a buck with a bullet through it." Accordingly the row passed over, and the playful Jaco- bus whom Jess noted with satisfaction was exceeding- ly sick and trembled in every limb was with difficulty hoisted on to his horse, and proceeded on his journey witft not a single bit of fun left in him. A little while after this Jess pointed out a long, low hill 300 JESS. that lay upon the flat belt, a dozen miles or so away, like a stone on a stretch of sand. " Look," she said, " there is Mooifontein at last!" "We are not there yet," remarked John, sadly. Another weary half-hour passed, and then they suddenly, on passing over a crest, saw Hans Coetzee's homestead ly- ing down by the water in the hollow. So that was where they were being taken to. Within a hundred yards of the house the Boers halted and consulted, except Jacobus, who went on, still looking very green. Finally the elder man came to them and ad- dressed Jess, at the same time handing her back the pass. " You can go on home," he said. " The Englishman must stay with us till we find out more about him." "He says that I can go. What shall I do?" asked Jess. "I don't like leaving you with these men." "Do ? why go, of course. I can look after myself; and if I can't, certainly you won't be able to help me. Perhaps you will be able to get some help at the farm. At any rate, you must go." "Now, Englishman," said the Boer. " Good-bye, Jess," said John. " God bless you." " Good-bye, John," she answered, looking him steadily in the eyes for a moment, and then turning away to hide the tears which would gather in her own. And thus they parted. She knew her way now, even across the open veldt, for she dared not go by the road. There was, however, a bridle-path that ran over the hill at the back of the house, and for this she shaped her course. It was five o'clock now, and both she and her horse were in a condition of great exhaustion, which was enhanced in her case by want of food and trouble of mind. But she was a strong woman and had a will of iron, and she held on where most women would have died. Jess meant to get to Mooifontein some- how, and she knew that she would get there. If she could JESS. 301 only reach the place and get some help sent to her lover, she did not greatly care what happened to her afterwards. The pace of the horse she was riding got slower and slower. From the ambling canter into which at first she managed occasionally to force it, and which is the best pace to travel in South Africa, it continually collapsed into a rough, short trot, which was agony to her, riding as she was, and from that into a walk. Indeed, just before sun- set, or a little after six o'clock, the walk became final. At last they reached the rising ground that stretched up the slope to the Mooifontein hill, and here the poor beast fell down, utterly worn out. Jess slipped off and tried to drag it up, but failed. It had not a yard of go left in it. So she did what she could, pulling off the bridle and undoing the girth, so that the saddle would fall off if the horse ever managed to rise. Then she set to work to walk over the hill. The poor horse watched her go with melancholy eyes, knowing that it was being deserted. First it neighed, then with a desperate effort struggled to its feet and ran after her a hundred yards or so, only to fall doAvn again at last. Jess turned and saw it, and, exhausted as she was, she positively ran to get away from the look in those big eyes. That night there was a cold rain, in which the horse perished, as " poor " horses are apt to do. It was nearly dark when Jess at length reached the top of the hill and looked down. She knew the spot well, and from it she could always see the light from the kitchen window of the house. To-night there was no light. Won- dering what it could mean, and feeling a fresh chill of doubt creep round her heart, she scrambled on down the hill. When she was about half-way down a shower of sparks suddenly shot up into the air from the spot where the house should be, caused by the fall of a piece of wall into the smouldering embers beneath. Again Jess paused, wondering and aghast. What could have happened ? De- termined at all hazards to discover, she crept on very cau- 302 JESS. tiously. Before she had gone another twenty yards, how- ever, a hand was suddenly laid upon her arm. She turned quickly, too paralyzed with fear to cry out, and as she did so a voice that was familiar to her whispered, " Missie Jess, Missie Jess, is it you ?" into her ear. " I am Jantje." She gave a sigh of relief, and her heart, which had stood still, began to move again. Here was a friend at last. " I heard you coming down the hill, though you came so softly," he said; "but I could not tell who it was, be- cause you jumped from rock to rock, and did not walk as usual. But I thought it was a woman with boots; I could not see, because the light all falls dead against the hill, and the stars are not up. So I got to the left of your path for the wind is blowing from the right and waited till you had passed and winded you. Then I knew who you were for certain either you or Missie Bessie ; but Missie Bessie is shut up, so it could not be her." " Bessie shut up!" ejaculated Jess, not even pausing to marvel at the doglike instinct that had enabled the Hot- tentot to identify her. " What do you mean ?" "This way, missie; come this way and I will tell you;" and he led her to a fantastic pile of rocks in which it was his wild habit to sleep. Jess knew the place well, and had often peeped into, but never entered, the Hottentot's kennel. "Stop a bit, missie. I will go and light a candle; I have some in there, and they can't see the light from the outside," and accordingly he vanished. In a few seconds he returned, and, taking her by the sleeve, led her along a winding passage between great bowlders, till they came to a beehole in the rocks, through which she could see the light shining. Going down on his hands and knees Jantje crept thi-ough and Jess followed him. She found herself in a small apTrtment, about six feet square by eight high, principally formed by the accidental falling together of several big bowlders, and roofed in by one great natural JESS. 303 slab. The place, which was lighted by an end of candle stuck upon the floor, was very dirty, as was to be expected from a Hottentot's den, and in it were collected an enor- mous variety of odds and ends. As, discarding a three- legged stool that Jantje offered her, Jess sank down upon a pile of skins in the corner, her eye fell upon a collection worthy of an old-rag-and-bone shop. The sides of the chamber were festooned with every imaginable garment, from the white full-dress coat of an Austrian officer down to a shocking pair of corduroys Jantje had " lifted" from the body of a bushman which he had discovered in his ram- bles. All these were in various stages of decay, and obvi- ously the result of years of patient collecting. In the cor- ners again were sticks, kerries, and two assegais, a number of queer-shaped stones and bones, handles of broken table- knives, bits of the locks of guns, portions of an American clock, and various other articles which this human jackdaw had picked up and hidden away here. Altogether it was a strange place; and it vaguely occurred to Jess, as she sank back upon the dirty skins, that, had it not been for the old clothes and the wreck of the American clock, she would have seen a very fair example of the dwellings of primeval man. " Stop before you begin," she said. " Have you any- thing to eat here ? I am nearly starving." Jantje grinned knowingly, and, grubbing in a heap of rubbish in the corner, fished out a gourd with a piece of flat sheet-iron which had once formed the back plate of a stove, placed on the top. It contained " raaas,"or curdled buttermilk, which a woman had brought him down that very morning from a neighboring kraal, and was destined for Jantje's own supper. Hungry as he was himself, for he had had no food all day, he gave it to Jess without a moment's hesitation, together with a wooden spoon, and, squatting on the rock before her, watched her eat it with guttural exclamations of satisfaction. Not knowing that 304 JESS. she was robbing a hungry man, Jess ate the mass to the last spoonful, and was grateful to feel the sensation of gnawing sickness leave her. " Now," she said, " tell me what you mean." Thereon Jantje began at the beginning and related the events of the day, so far as he was acquainted with them. When he came to where the old man was dragged, with kicks and blows and ignominy, from his own house, Jess's eyes flashed, and she positively ground her teeth with in- dignation; and as for her feelings when she learned that he was condemned to death and to be shot at dawn on the morrow, they simply baffle description. Of the Bessie complication Jantje was quite ignorant, and could only tell her that Frank Muller had an interview with her sister in the little plantation, and that after that she was shut up in the storeroom, where she still was. But this was quite enough for Jess, who knew Muller's character better, per- haps, than anybody else, and was not by any means igno- rant of his designs upon Bessie. A few moments' thought put the key of the matter into her hand. She saw now what was the reason of the granting of the pass, and of the determined and partially successful attempt at whole- sale murder of which they had been the victims. She saw, too, why her old uncle had been condemned to death that was to be used as a lever with Bessie; the man was capable even of that. Yes, she saw it all as clear as day- light; and in her heart she swore, helpless as she seemed to be, that she would find a way to prevent it. But what way? what way? Ah, if only John were here! But he was not, so she must act without him, if only she could see the way to action. She thought first of all of going down boldly and facing Muller, and denouncing him as a mur- derer before his men ; but a moment's reflection showed that this was impracticable. For his own safety be would be obliged to stop her mouth somehow, and the best she could expect would be to be incarcerated and rendered JESS. 305 quite powerless. If only she could manage to communi- cate with Bessie! At any rate, it was absolutely necessary that she should know what was going on. She might as well be a hundred miles away as a hundred yards. " Jantje," she said, " tell me where the Boers are." " Some are in the wagon-house, missie, some are on sen- try, and the rest are down by the wagon they brought with them and outspanned behind the gums there. The cart is there, too, that came just before you did, with the clergyman in it." " And where is Frank Muller ?" "I don't know, missie; but he brought a round tent with him in the wagon, and it is pitched between the two big gums." " Jantje, I must go down there and find out what is go- ing on, and you must come with me." " You will be caught, missie. There is a sentry at the back of the wagon-house and two in front. But," he added, " perhaps we might get near. I will go out and look at the night." Presently he returned and said that a " small rain " had come on, and the clouds covered up the stars so that it was very dark. " Well, let us go at once," said Jess. "Missie, you had better not go," answered the Hotten- tot. "You will get wet and the Boers will catch you. Better let me go. I can creep about like a snake, and if the Boers catch me it won't matter." " You must come too, but I am going. I must find out." Then the Hottentot shrugged his shoulders and yielded, and, having extinguished the candle, silently as ghosts they crept out into the night. 20 CHAPTER XXXII. HE SHALL DIE. THE night was still and very dark. A soft, cold rain, such as one often gets in the Wakkerstroom and New Scotland districts of the Transvaal, and which more re- sembles a true north-country mist than anything else, was falling gently but persistently. This condition of affairs was as favorable as possible to their enterprise, and under cover of it the Hottentot and the white girl crept far down the hill to within twelve or fourteen paces of the back of the wagon-house. Then Jantje, who was leading, sudden- ly put back his hand and checked her, and at that moment Jess caught the sound of a sentry's footsteps as he tramped leisurely up and down. For a couple of minutes or so they stopped thus, not knowing what to do, when sudden- ly a man came round the corner of the building holding a lantern in his hand. On seeing the lantern Jess's first im- pulse was to fly, but Jantje, by a motion, made her under- stand that she was to stop still. The man with the lantern advanced towards the other man, holding the light above his head, and looking dim and gigantic in the mist and rain. Presently he turned his face, and Jess saw that it was Frank Muller himself. He stood thus for a moment waiting till the sentry was near to him. " You can go to your supper," he said. " Come back in half an hour. I will be responsible for the prisoners till then." The man growled out an answer, something about the rain, and then departed round the end of the building, fol- lowed by Muller. JESS. 307 " Now then, come on," whispered Jantj6 ; " there is a hole in the storeroom wall, and you may be able to speak to Missie Bessie." Jess did not require a second invitation, but slipped up to the wall in five seconds. Passing her hand over the stonework, she found the air-hole, which she remembered well, for they used to play bo-peep there as children, and was about to whisper through it, when suddenly the door at the other end opened, and Frank Muller entered, bear- ing the lantern in his hand. For a moment he stood on the threshold, opening the slide of the lantern in order to increase the light. His hat was off, and he had a cape of dark cloth thrown over his shoulders, which seemed to add to his great breadth, and the thought flashed through the mind of Jess as she looked at him through the hole, and the light struck upon his face and form, and glinted down his golden beard, that he was the most magnificent speci- men of humanity she had ever seen. In another instant he had turned the lantern round and revealed her dear sis- ter Bessie to her gaze. Bessie was seated upon one of the half-empty sacks of mealies, apparently half asleep, for she opened her wide blue eyes and looked round appre- hensively like one suddenly awakened. Her golden curls were in disorder and falling over her fair forehead, and her face was very pale and troubled, and marked beneath the eyes with deep blue lines. Catching sight of her vis- itor, she rose hurriedly and retreated as far from him as the pile of sacks and potatoes would allow. " What is it ?" she said, in a low voice. " I gave you my answer. Why do you come to torment me again ?" He placed the lantern upon an upright sack of mealies, and carefully balanced it before he answered. Jess could see that he was taking time to consider. "Let us recapitulate," he said, at length, in his full, rich voice. " The position is this. I gave you this morn- ing the choice between consenting to marry me to-mor- 308 JESS. row, and seeing your old uncle and benefactor shot. Fur- ther, I assured you that if you would not consent to marry me your uncle should be shot, and that I would then make you mine, dispensing with the ceremony of marriage. Is that not so ?" Bessie made no answer, and he continued, his eyes fixed upon her face and thoughtfully stroking his beard. "Silence gives consent. I will go on. Before a man can be shot according to law he must be tried and con- demned according to law. Your uncle has been tried and has been condemned." " I heard it all, cruel murderer that you are," said Bes- sie, lifting her head for the first time. " So ! I thought you would, through the crack. That is why I had you put into this place; it would not have looked well to bring you before the court," and he took the light and examined the crevice. " This place is badly built," he went on, in a careless tone ; " look, there is another space there at the back," and he actually came up to it and held the lantern close to it so that the light from it shone through into Jess's eyes and nearly blinded her. She shut them quickly, so that the gleam reflected from them should not betray her, and then held her breath and remained as still as the dead. In another second he took away the light and replaced it on the mealie bag. "So you say you saw it all. Well, it must have shown you that I was in earnest. The old man took it well, did he not ? He is a brave man, and I respect him. I fancy that he will not move a muscle at the last. That comes of English blood, you see. It is the best in the world, and I am proud to have it in my veins." ' " Cannot you stop torturing me and say what you have to say ?" asked Bessie. " I had no wish to torture you, but if you like I will come to the point. It is this. Will you now consent to marry me to-morrow morning at sun-up, or am I to be JESS. 309 forced to carry the sentence on your old uncFe into ef- fect ?" " I will not. I will not. I hate you and defy you." Muller looked at her coldly, and then drew his pocket- book from his pocket and extracted from it the death-war- rant and a pencil. "Look, Bessie," he said. "This is your uncle's death- warrant. At present it is valueless and informal, for I have not yet signed, though, as you will see, I have been careful that everybody else should. If once I place my signature there it cannot be revoked, and the sentence must be carried into effect. If you persist in your re- fusal I will sign it before your eyes," and he placed the paper on the book and took the pencil in his right hand. " Oh, you cannot, you cannot be such a fiend," wailed the wretched woman, wringing her hands. " I assure you you are mistaken. I both can and will. I have gone too far to turn back for the sake of one old Englishman. Listen, Bessie. Your lover Niel is dead, that you know." Here Jess behind the wall felt inclined to cry out " It is a lie !" but. remembering the absolute necessity of silence, checked herself. " And what is more," went on Muller, " your sister Jess is dead too ; she died two days ago." " Jess dead ! Jess dead ! It is not true. How do you know that she is dead ?" " Never mind ; I will tell you when we are married. She is dead, and except for your uncle you are alone in the world. If you persist in this he will soon be dead too, and his blood will be upon your head, for you will have murdered him." " And if I were to say yes, how would that help him ?" she cried, wildly. " He is condemned by your court-mar- tial you would only deceive me and murder him after all." 310 JESS. " On my honor, no. Before the marriage I will give this warrant to the pastor, and he shall burn it as soon as the service is said. But, Bessie, don't you see that these fools who tried your uncle are only like clay in my hands ? I can bend them this way and that, and whatever the song I sing they will echo it. They do not wish to shoot your uncle, and will be glad, indeed, to get out of it. Your uncle shall go in safety to Natal, or stay here if he wills. His property shall be secured for him, and compensation paid for the burning of his house. I swear it before God." She looked up at him, and he could see that she was in- clined to believe him. "It is true, Bessie, it is true I will rebuild the place myself, and if I can find the man who fired it he shall be shot. Come, listen to me, and be reasonable. The man you loved is dead, and no amount of sighing can bring him to your arms. I alone am left I, who love you better than life, better than man ever loved a woman before. Look at me, am I not a proper man for any maid to wed, though I be half a Boer? And I have the brains, too, Bessie, the brains that shall make us both great. We were made for each other I have known it for years, and slowly, slowly, I have worked my way to you till at last you are in my reach," and he stretched out both his arms towards her. " My darling," he went on, in a soft, half-dreamy voice, " my love and my desire, yield, now yield ! Do not force this new crime upon me. I want to grow good for your sake, and have done with bloodshed. When you are my wife I believe that the evil will go out of me, and I shall grow good. Yield, and never shall woman have had such a husband as I will be to you. I will make your life soft and beautiful to you as women love life to be. You shall have everything that money can buy and power bring. Yield for your uncle's sake, and for the sake of the great love I bear you." JESS. 311 As he spoke he was slowly drawing nearer Bessie, whose face wore a half-fascinated expression. As he came the wretched woman gathered herself together and put out her hand to repulse him. "No, no," she cried, " I hate you I cannot be false to him, living or dead. I shall kill my- self I know I shall." He made no answer, but simply came always nearer till at last his strong arms closed round her shrinking form and drew her to him as easily as though she were a babe. And then all at once she seemed to yield. That embrace was the outward sign of his cruel mastery, and she struggled no more, mentally or physically. " Will you marry me, darling will you marry me ?" he whispered, with his lips so close to the golden curls that Jess, straining her ears outside, could only just catch the words " Oh, I suppose so ; but I shall die it will kill me." He strained her to his heart and kissed her beautiful face again and again, and next moment Jess heard the footsteps of the returning sentry and saw him release her. Jantje, too, caught her by the hand and dragged her away from the wall, and in ten seconds more she was once more ascending the hillside towards the Hottentot's ken- nel. She had gone to find out how matters lay, and she had, indeed, found out. To attempt to portray the fury, the indignation, and the thirst to be avenged upon the fiend who had attempted to murder her and her lover, and had bought her dear sister's honor at the price of her in- nocent old uncle's life, would be impossible. All her weari- ness was forgotten ; she was mad with what she had seen and heard, with the knowledge of what had been done and what was about to be done. She even forgot her passion in it, and swore that Muller should never marry Bessie while she lived to prevent it. Had she been a bad woman she might have seen herein an opportunity, for, Bessie once married to Muller, John would be free to marry her, but 312 JESS. the idea never even entered her mind. Whatever Jess's errors may have been she was a self-sacrificing, honorable woman, and would have died rather than take such an ad- vantage. Presently they reached the shelter again and crept in. " Light a candle," said Jess. Jantje fumbled about and finally struck a match. The bit of candle they had been using, however, was nearly burned out, so from the rubbish in the corner he produced a box full of " ends," some of them three or four inches long. Jess, in that queer sort of way in which trifles do strike us when the mind is undergoing a severe strain, in- stantly remembered that for years she had been unable to discover what became of the odd pieces of the candles used in the house. Now the mystery was explained. " Now go outside and leave me. I want to think." The Hottentot obeyed, and, seated there upon the heap of skins, her forehead resting on her hand and her fingers run through her silky hair, now wet with the rain, she be- gan to review the position. It was evident to her that Frank Muller would be as good as his word. She knew him too well to doubt it for a moment. If Bessie did not marry him he would murder the old man, as he had tried to murder her and John, only this time judicially, and then abduct her afterwards. Bessie was the only price that he was prepared to take in exchange for her uncle's life. But it was impossible to allow Bessie to be so sacrificed ; the thought was horrible to her. How, then, was it to be prevented ? She thought again of going down and confronting Frank Muller, and openly accusing him of her attempted murder, only, however, to dismiss the idea. Who would believe her ? and if they did believe, what good would it do? She would only be im- prisoned and kept out of harm's way, or possibly murdered without further ado. Then she thought of attempting to communicate with her uncle and Bessie, to tell them that JESS. 313 John was, so far as she knew, alive, only to recognize the impossibility of doing so now that the sentry was back. Besides, what object could be served ? The knowledge that John was alive might, it is true, nerve up Bessie to resist Muller, but then the sole result would be that the old man would be shot. Dismissing this from her mind, she began to consider whether they could obtain assistance. Alas ! it was impossible. The only people from whom she could hope for help would be the natives, and now that the Boers had triumphed over the English (for this much she had gathered from her captors and from Jantje), it was very doubtful if they would dare to help her. Be- sides, at the best it would take twenty-four hours to col- lect a force, and that would be too late. The thing was hopeless. Nowhere could she see a ray of light. " What," she said aloud to herself, " what is there in the world that will stop a man like Frank Muller ?" And then all of an instant the answer rose up in her brain as though through an inspiration "Death!" Death, and death alone, would stop him. For a minute she kept the idea in her mind till she was familiarized with it, and then it was driven out by another that followed swiftly on its track. Frank Muller must die, and die be- fore the morning light. By no other possible means could the Gordian knot be cut, and both Bessie and her old uncle saved. If he were dead he could not marry Bes- sie, and if he died with the warrant unsigned their uncle could not be executed. That was the answer to the riddle, and a terrible one it was. But, after all, it was just that he should die, for had he not murdered and attempted murder? Surely if ever a man deserved a swift and awful doom it was Frank Muller. And so this apparently helpless girl, crouched upon the ground a torn and bespattered fugitive in the miserable hiding-hole of a Hottentot, arraigned the powerful leader 814 JESS. of men before the tribunal of her conscience, and without pity, if without wrath, passed upon him a sentence of ex- tinction. But who was to be the executioner ? A dreadful thought flashed into her mind and made her heart stand still, but she dismissed it* She had not come to that yet. Her eyes wandered round the kennel and lit upon Jantje's assegais and sticks in the corner, and then she got another inspira- tion. Jantje should do the deed. John had told her one day told her, when they were sitting together in " The Palatial " at Pretoria the whole of Jantje's awful story about the massacre of his relatives by Frank Muller twenty years before, of which, indeed, she already knew some- thing. It would be most fitting that this fiend should be removed off the face of the earth by the survivor of those unfortunates. There would be a little poetic justice about that, and it is so rare in the world. But the question was, would he do it ? The little man was a wonderful coward, that she knew, and had a great terror of Boers, and espe- cially of Frank Muller. " Jantje," she whispered, putting her head towards the bee-hole. " Yes, missie," answered a hoarse voice outside, and next second his monkey-like face came creeping into the ring of light, followed by his even more monkey-like form. " Sit down there, Jantje. I am lonely here, and want to talk." He obeyed her, with a grin. "What shall we talk about, missie. Shall I tell you a story of the time when the beasts used to speak like I used to do years and years ago ?" " No, Jantje. Tell me about that stick that long stick with a knob on the top, and the nicks cut on it. Has it not something to do with Frank Muller ?" The Hottentot's face instantly grew evil. " Yah, yah, missie!" he said, reaching out a skinny claw and seizing JESS. 315 the stick. " Look, that big notch, that is my father, Baas Frank shot him ; and that next notch, that is my mother, Baas Frank shot her; and the next one, that is my uncle, an old, old man, Baas Frank shot him too. And these small notches, they are when he has beaten me yes, and other things too. And now I will make more notches one for the house that is burned, and one for the old Baas Croft, my own baas, whom he is going to shoot, and one for Missie Bessie." And without further ado he drew from his side a very large white-handled hunting-knife, and began to cut them then and there upon the hard wood of the stick. Jess knew this knife of old. It was Jantje's peculiar treasure, the chief joy of his narrow little heart. He had bought it from a Zulu for a heifer which her uncle had given him in lieu of half a year's wage. The Zulu had got it from a man who came down from beyond Delagoa Bay. As a matter of fact it was a Samali knife, manufac- tured from soft native steel (which takes an edge like a razor), and with a handle cut from the tusk of a hippopot- amus. For the rest, it was about a foot long, with three grooves running the length of the blade, and very heavy. " Stop cutting notches, Jantje, and let me look at that knif.e." He obeyed, and put it into her hand. " That knife would kill a man, Jantje," she said. " Yes, yes," he answered; "no doubt it has killed many men." "It would kill Frank Muller, now, would it not?" she said, suddenly bending forward and fixing her dark eyes upon the little man's jaundiced orbs. "Yah, yah," he said, starting back, "it would kill him dead. Ah! what a thing it would be to kill him," he added, with a fierce half-sniggle, half-laugh. " He killed your father, Jantje." " Yah, yah, he killed my father," said Jantje, his eyes beginning to roll with rage. 316 JESS. " He killed your mother." " Yah, he killed my mother," he repeated after her, with eager ferocity. " And your uncle. He killed your uncle." " And my uncle, too," he went on, shaking his fist and twitching his long toes as his voice rose to a sort of sub- dued scream. " But he will die in blood the old English- woman, his mother, said it when the devil was in her, and the devils never lie. Look! I draw Baas Frank's circle in the dust with my toe, and listen, I say the words I say the words," and he muttered something rapidly; " an old, old witch-doctor taught me how to do it, and what to say. Once before I did it, and there was a stone in the way ; now there is no stone; look, the ends meet. He will die in blood! he will die soon. I know how to read the cir- cle," and he gnashed his teeth and sawed the air with his clinched fists. " Yes, you are right, Jantje," she said, still holding him with her dark eyes. " He will die in blood, and he shall die to-night, and you will kill him, Jantje." The Hottentot started, and turned pale under his yellow skin. "How?" he said; "how?" "Bend forward, Jantje, and I will tell you how;" and she whispered for some minutes into his ear. "Yes! yes! yes!" he said, when she had done. "Oh, what a fine thing it is to be clever, like the white people! I will kill him to-night, and then I can cut out the notches, and the ghosts of my father and my mother and my uncle will stop howling round me in the night as they do now when I am asleep." CHAPTER XXXIH. VENGEANCE. FOB three or four minutes more they whispered togeth- er, after which the Hottentot rose to go and find out how things were among the Boers below, and see when Frank Muller retired to his tent. As soon as he had marked him down he was to come back and report to Jess, and then the final steps were to be decided on. When he was gone Jess gave a sigh of relief. This stirring up of Jantje to the boiling-point of vengeance had been a dreadful thing to nerve herself to do; but now, at any rate, it was done, and the deed settled upon. But what the end of it would be none could say. She would prac- tically be a murderess, and she felt sooner or later her guilt would find her out, and then she would have little mercy to hope for. Still she had no scruples, for after all Frank Muller's would be a well-merited doom. But when all was said and done it was a dreadful thing to be forced to steep her hands in blood, even for Bessie's sake. If Mul- ler were slain Bessie would marry John, provided John escaped from the Boers, and be happy; but what would become of her ? Robbed of her love, and with this crime upon her mind, what could she do, even if she escaped except die ? It would be better to die and never see him again, for her sorrow and her shame were more than she could bear. And then she began to think of John till all her poor, bruised heart seemed to go out towards him. Bessie could never love him as she did, she felt sure of that, and yet Bessie was to have him by her all her life, 318 JESS. and she she was to go away. Well, it was the only thing to do. She would see this deed done, and set her sister free, and then if she happened to escape she would go go right away, where she would never be heard of again. Then, at any rate, she would have behaved like an honor- able woman. She sat up and put her hands to her face. It was burning hot, though she was wet through, and chilled to the bone with the raw damp of the night. A fierce fever of mind and body had taken hold of her, worn out as she was with emotion, hunger, and protracted ex- posure. But her brain was clear enough; she never re- membered its being so clear before. Every thought that came into her mind seemed to present itself with startling vividness, standing out by itself against a black back- ground of nothingness, not softened and shaded down one into another as thoughts generally are. She seemed to see herself wandering away alone, utterly alone, alone forever ! while in the far distance John stood holding Bessie by the hand and gazing after her regretfully. Well, she would write to him, since it must be so, and bid him one word of farewell. She could not go without it. She had a pencil, and in the breast of her dress was the Boer pass, the back of which, stained as it was with water, would serve the purpose of paper. She drew it out and, bending forward towards the light, placed it on her knees. "Good-bye," she wrote, "good-bye! We can never meet again, and it is better that we never should, in this world. Whether there is another I do not know. If there is, I shall wait for you there. If not, then good-bye for- ever. Think of me sometimes, for I have loved you very dearly, and as nobody will ever love you again; and while I live in. this or any other world, and am myself, I shall always love you and you only. Don't forget me. I never shall be really dead to you until I am forgotten. J." She lifted the paper off her knee and then put it back again and began to scribble in verse, quickly and almost JESS. 319 without correction. It was a habit of hers, though she never showed what she wrote, and now it asserted itself irresistibly and half unconsciously " When hands that clasp thine own in seeming truth, Or linger in caress upon thy head, Have rudely broke the idols of thy youth And cast them down amid thy treasured dead, Remember me " When she had got thus far she stopped, dissatisfied, and, running her pencil through the lines, began afresh " If I should die to-night Then would'st thou look upon my quiet face, Before they laid me in my resting-place, And deem that death had made it almost fair ; " And laying snow-white flowers against my hair Would'st on my cold cheek tender kisses press And fold my hands with lingering caress, Poor hands, so empty and so cold to-night ! " If I should die to-night Then would'st thou call to mind with loving thought Some kindly deed the icy hands had wrought, Some tender words the frozen lips had said, Errands on which the willing feet had sped : The memory of my passion and my pride, And every fault would sure be set aside. So should I be forgiven of all to-night. "Death waits on me to-night, E'en now my summons echoes from afar, And grave mists gather fast about my star Think gently of me ; I am travel-worn, My faltering feet are pierced with many a thorn, The bitter world has made my faint heart bleed. When dreamless rest is mine I shall not need The tenderness for which I long to-night !" She stopped, apparently more because she had got to the end of the paper than for any other reason, and, with- out even rereading what she had written, pushed the pass back into her bosom and was soon lost in thought. 320 JESS. Ten minutes later Jantje came creeping in to where she sat, like a great snake in human form, his yellow face shin- ing with the rain-drops. "Well," whispered Jess, looking up with a start, "have you done it ?" " No, missie, no. Baas Frank has but now gone to his tent. He has been talking to the clergyman, something about Missie Bessie, I don't know what. I was near, but he talked low and I could only hear the name." " Have the Boers all gone to sleep ?" " All, missie, except the sentries." " Is there a sentry before Baas Frank's tent ?" " No, missie, there is nobody near." " What is the time, Jantje ?" " About three hours and a half after sundown " (half- past ten). " Let us wait half an hour, and then you must go." Accordingly they sat in silence. In silence they sat facing each other and their own thoughts. Presently Jantje broke it by drawing the big white-handled knife and commencing to sharpen it on a piece of leather. The sight made Jess feel sick. " Put the knife up," she said, quickly, " it is sharp enough." Jantje obeyed with a feeble grin, and the minutes passed on heavily. " Now, Jantje," she said, at length, speaking huskily in her struggle to overcome the spasmodic contractions of her throat, " it is time for you to go." The Hottentot fidgeted about, and at last spoke. " Missie must come with me !" " Come with you !" answered Jess, with a start; " why ?" " Because the ghost of the old Englishwoman will come after me if I go alone." " You fool !" said Jess, angrily, and then recollecting herself, added, " Come, be a man, Jantje ; think of your father and mother, and be a man." JESS. 321 " I am a man," be answered, sulkily, " and I will kill him like a man, but what good is a man agiinst the ghost of a dead Englishwoman ? If I put the knife into her she would only make faces, and fire would come out of the hole. I will not go without you, missie." " You must go," she said, fiercely ; " you shall go !" " No, missie, I will not go alone," he answered. Jess looked at him and saw that he meant what he said. He was getting sulky, and the worst-dispositioned donkey in the world is far, far easier to deal with than a sulky Hottentot. She must either give up the project or go with the man. Well, she was equally guilty one way or the other, and was really almost callous about being de- tected, so she might as well go. She had no power left to make fresh plans. Her mind seemed to be exhausted. Only she must keep out of the way at the last. She could not bear to be near then. " Well," she said, " I will go with you, Jantje." " Good, missie, that is all right now. You can keep off the ghost of the dead Englishwoman while I kill Baas Frank. But first he must be fast asleep. Fast, fast asleep." Then slowly and with the uttermost caution they once more crept down the hill. This time there was no light to be seen in the direction of the wagon-house, and no sound to be heard except the regular tramp of the sen- tries. But their business did not lie in the direction of the wagon-house ; they left that on their right and curved round towards the blue -gum avenue. When they got nearly opposite to the first tree they halted in a patch of stones, and Jantje went forward to reconnoitre. Present- ly he returned with the intelligence that all the Boers who were with the wagon had gone to sleep, but that Muller was still sitting in his tent, thinking. Then they crept on, perfectly sure that if they were not heard they would not be seen, curtained as they were by the dense mist and dark- 21 322 JESS. ness, till at length they reached the bole of the first big gum-tree. Five paces from this tree Frank Mailer's tent was pitched. It had a light in it which caused the wet tent to glow in the mist, as though it had been rubbed with phosphorus, and on this lurid canvas the shadow of Frank Muller was gigantically limned. He was so placed that the light cast a magnified reflection of his every feat- ure and even of his expression upon the screen before them. The attitude in which he was seated was his fa- vorite one when he was plunged in thought, his hands resting on his knees and his gaze fixed on vacancy. He was thinking of his triumph, and of all that he had gone through to win it, and of all that it would bring him. He held the trump cards now, and the game was in his own hand. He had triumphed, and yet over him hung the shadow of that curse that dogs the presence of our accom- plished desires. Too often, even with the innocent, does the seed of our destruction lurk in the rich blossom of our hopes, and much more is this so with the guilty. Some- how this thought was present in his mind to-night, and in a rough, half-educated way he grasped its truth. Once more the saying of the old Boer general rose in his mind. "I believe that there is a God I believe that God sets a limit to a man's doings. If he is going too far, God kills him." What a dreadful thing it would be if the old fool were right after all ! Supposing that there were a God, and God were to kill him to-night, and hurry off his soul, if he had one, to some dim place of unending fear ! All his su- perstitions awoke at the thought, and he shivered so vio- lently that the shadow of the shiver caused the outlines of the gigantic form upon the canvas to tremble up and down. Then, rising with an angry curse, he hastily threw off his outer clothing, and having turned down but not extin- guished the rough paraffine lamp, flung himself upon the JESS. 323 little camp bedstead, which creaked and groaned beneath his weight like a thing in pain. Then came silence, only broken by the drip, drip, of the rain from the gum leaves overhead and the rattling of the boughs whenever a breath of air stirred them. It was an eerie and depressing night, a night that might well have tried the nerves of any strong man who, wet through and worn-out, had been obliged to crouch upon the open and endure it. How much more awful was it, then, to the un- fortunate woman who, half broken-hearted, fever-stricken, and well-nigh crazed with suffering of mind and body, waited in it to see murder done ! Slowly the minutes passed, and at every rain-drop or rustle of a bough her guilty conscience summoned up a host of fears. But by the mere power of her will she kept them down. She would go through with it. Yes, she would go through with it. Surely he must be asleep by now ! ,They crept up to the tent and placed their ears within two inches of his head. Yes, he was asleep ; the sound of his breathing rose and fell with the regularity of an in- fant's. Jess turned round and touched her companion upon the shoulder. He did not move, but she felt that his arm was shaking. " Nbic," she whispered. Still he hung back. It was evident to her that the long waiting had taken the courage out of him. " Be a man," she whispered again, so low that the sound scarcely reached his ears although her lips were almost touching them, " go, and mind you strike home !" Then at last she heard him softly draw the great knife from the sheath, and in another second he had glided from her side. Presently she saw the line of light that cut out upon the darkness through the opening of the tent broaden a little, and by that she knew that he was creeping in upon his dreadful errand. Then she turned her head and put 324 JESS. her fingers in her ears. But even so she could see a long line of shadow travelling across the skirt of the tent. So she shut her eyes also, and waited, sick at heart, for she did not dare to move. Presently it might have been five minutes or only half a minute afterwards, for she had lost count of time, she felt somebody touch her on the arm. It was Jantje. " Ts it done ?" she whispered again. He shook his head and drew her away from the tent. In going her foot caught in one of the guide-ropes and shook it slightly. " I could not do it, missie, he said. He is asleep and looks just like a child. When I lifted the knife he smiled in his sleep, and all the strength went out of my arm, so that I could not strike. And then before I could get strong again the ghost of the old Englishwoman came and hit me in the back, and I ran away." If a look could have blasted a man Jantje would as- suredly have been blasted then. The man's cowardice made her mad, but while she still choked with wrath a duiker buck, which had come down from its stony home to feed upon the rose-bushes, suddenly sprang with a crash almost from their feet, passing away like a gray gleam into the utter darkness. Jess started and then recovered herself, guessing what it was, but the miserable Hottentot was overcome with terror, and fell upon the ground groaning out that it was the ghost of the old Englishwoman. He had dropped the knife as he fell, and Jess, seeing the imminent peril in which they were placed, knelt down, picked it up, and hissed into his ear that if he were not quiet she would kill him. This pacified him a little, but no earthly power could persuade him to enter the tent again. What was to be done ? What could she do ? For two minutes or more she buried her face in her wet hands and thought wildly and despairingly. JESS. 325 Then a dark and dreadful determination entered her mind. The man Muller should not escape. Bessie should not be sacrificed to him. Rather than that, she would do the deed herself. Without a word she rose, animated by the tragic agony of her purpose and the force of her despair, and glided towards the tent; the great knife in her hand. Now, ah ! all too soon, she was inside of it and stood for a second to allow her eyes to grow accustomed to the light. Present- ly she began to see, first, the outline of the bed, then the outline of the manly form stretched upon it, then both bed and man distinctly. Jantje had said that he was sleeping like a child. He might have been, now he was not. On the contrary, his face was convulsed like that of one in an extremity of fear, and great beads of sweat stood upon his brow. It was as though he knew his danger, and was yet utterly powerless to avoid it. He lay upon his back. One heavy arm, his left, hung over the side of the bed, the knuckles of the hand resting on the ground ; the other was thrown back and his head was pillowed upon it. The clothing had fallen back from his throat and massive chest, which were quite bare. Jess stood and gazed. " For Bessie's sake, for Bessie's sake !" she murmured, and then, impelled by a force that seemed to. move of itself, she crept slowly, slowly, to the right-hand side of the bed. At this moment the man woke, and his opening eyes fell full upon her face. Whatever his dream had been, what he now saw was far more terrible, for bending over him was the ghost of tin ml ! There she was, risen from her river grave, torn, dishevelled, water yet dripping from her hands and hair. Those sunk and marble cheeks, those dreadful flaming eyes could be- long to no human being, but only to a spirit. It was the spirit of Jess Croft, the woman he had munli-ivl. conn- back to tell him that there was a living vengeance and a 326 JESS. hell ! Their eyes met, and no creature will ever know the agony of terror that he tasted of before the end came. She saw his face sink in and turn ashen gray while the cold sweat ran from every pore. He was awake, but fear paralyzed him, he could not speak or move. He was awake, and she could hesitate no more. He must have seen the flash of the falling steel, and She was outside the tent again, the red knife in her hand. She flung the accursed thing from her. That shriek must have awakened every soul within a mile. Already she could faintly hear the stir of men down by the wagon and the patter of Jantje running for his life. Then she too turned and fled straight up the hill. She knew not whither, she cared not where ! None saw her or followed her, the hunt had broken away to the left after Jantje. Her heart was lead and her brain a rocking sea of fire, while before her, around her, and behind her yelled all the conscience-created furies that run murder to his lair. On she flew, one sight only before her eyes, one sound only in her ears. On over the hill, far into the rain and night. CHAPTER XXXIV. TANTA COETZEE TO THE RESCUE. AFTER Jess had been set free by the Boers outside Hans Coetzee's place, John was sharply ordered to dismount and offsaddle his horse. This he did with the best grace that he could muster, and the horse was knee-haltered and let loose to feed. It was then indicated to him that he was to enter the house, which he also did, closely attended by two of the Boers. The room into which he was con- ducted was the same that he had first become acquainted with on the occasion of the buck hunt that had so nearly ended in his extinction. There was the Buckenhout table, and there were the chairs and couches made of stinkwood. Also, in the biggest chair at the other end of the room, a moderate sized slop-basin full of coffee by her side, sat Tanta Coetzee, still actively employed in doing absolute- ly nothing. There, too, were the showily-dressed young women ; there was the sardonic lover of one of them, and all the posse of young men with rifles. The whole place and its characteristics were quite unchanged, and on en- tering it John felt inclined to rub his eyes and wonder whether the events of the last few months had been noth- ing but a dream. The only thing that was different was the welcome that he received. Evidently he was not ex- pected to shake hands all round on the present occasion. Fallen indeed would the Boer have been considered who, within a few days of Majuba, offered to shake hands with a wretched English rooibaatje, picked up like a lame buck on the veldt. At the least he would have kept the cere- mony for private celebration, if only out of respect to the 328 JESS. feelings of others. On this occasion John's entry was re- ceived in icy silence. The old woman did not deign to look up, the young ones shrugged their shoulders and turned their backs, as though they had suddenly seen something that was not nice. Only the countenance of the sardonic lover softened to a grin. John walked to the end of the room where there was a vacant chair and stood by it. " Have I your permission to sit down, ma'am ?" he said at last, in a loud tone, addressing the old lady. " Dear Lord !" said the old lady to the man next to her, "what a voice the poor creature has; it is like a bull's. What does he say ?" The man explained. " The floor is the right place for Englishmen and Kaf- firs," said the old lady, " but after all he is a man, and perhaps sore with riding. Englishmen always get sore when they try to ride;" and then with startling energy she shouted out, "Sit! I will show the rooibaatje he is not the only one with a voice," she added, by way of explanation. A subdued sniggle followed this sally of wit, during which John took his seat with all the native grace that he could command, which at the moment was not much. " Dear me !" she went on, presently, for she was a bit of a humorist, " he looks very dirty and pale, doesn't he ? I suppose the poor thing has been hiding in the ant-bear holes with nothing to eat. I am told that up in the Dra- kensberg yonder the ant-bear holes are full of Englishmen. They had rather starve in them than come out, for fear lest they should meet a Boer." This provoked another sniggle, and then the young ladies took up the ball. " Are you hungry, rooibaatje ?" asked one in English. John was boiling with fury, but he was also starving, so he answered that he was. JESS. 329 " Tie his hands behind him, and let us see if he can catch in his mouth, like a dog," suggested one of the gen- tle youths. " No, no; make him eat pap with a wooden spoon, like a Kaffir," said another. " I will feed him if you have a very long spoon." Here again was legitimate cause for merriment, but in the end matters were compromised by a lump of biltong and a piece of bread being thrown to him from the other end of the room. He caught them and proceeded to eat, trying to conceal his ravenous hunger as much as possible from the circle of onlookers who clustered round to watch the operation. " Carolus," said the old lady to the sardonic affianced of her daughter, "there are three thousand men in the British army." " Yes, my aunt." " There are three thousand men in the British army," she repeated, looking round angrily as though somebody had questioned the truth of her statement. " I tell you that my grandfather's brother was at Cape Town in the time of Governor Smith, and he counted the whole Brit- ish army, and there were three thousand of them." " That is so, my aunt," answered Carolus. " Then why did you contradict me, Carolus ?" " I did not intend to, my aunt." "I should hope not, Carolus; it would vex the dear Lord to see a boy with a squint" (Carolus was slight ly afflicted in that way) " contradict his future mother-in- law. Tell me how many Englishmen were killed at Laing's Nek?" " Nine hundred," replied Carolus, promptly. " And at Ingogo ?" " Six hundred and twenty." " And at Majuba ?" " One thousand." 330 JESS. " Then that makes two thousand five hundred men, yes, and the rest were finished at Bronker's Spruit. Nephews, that rooibaatje there," pointing to John, " is one of the last men left in the British army." Most of her audience appeared to accept this argument as conclusive, but some mischievous spirit put it into the breast of the saturnine Carolus to contradict her, notwith- standing the lesson he had just had. " That is not so, my aunt; there are many d d Eng- lishmen still sneaking about the Nek, and also at Pretoria and Wakkerstroom." " I tell you it is a lie," said the old lady, raising her voice, " they are only Kaffirs and c.amp followers. There were three thousand men in the British army, and now they are all killed except that rooibaatje. How dare you contradict your future mother-in-law, you dirty, squint- eyed, yellow-faced monkey ! There, take that !" and be- fore the unfortunate Carolus knew where he was, he received the slop-basin with its contents full in the face. The bowl broke upon the bridge of his nose, and the coffee flew all over him, into his eyes and hair, down his throat and over his body, making such a spectacle of him as must have been seen to be appreciated. " Ah !" went on the old lady, much soothed and grati- fied by the eminent and startling success of her shot, " never you tell me again I don't know how to throw a basin of coffee. I haven't practised at my man Hans for thirty years for nothing, I can tell you. Now you, Garo- lus, I have taught you not to contradict; go and wash your face and we will have supper." Carolus ventured no reply, and was led away by his betrothed half blinded and utterly subdued, while her\sis- ter set the table for the evening meal. When it was ready the men sat down to meat and the women waited on them. John was not asked to sit down, but one of the girls threw him a boiled mealiecob, for which, being still JESS. 331 very hungry, he was duly grateful, and afterwards he man- aged to get a mutton-bone and another bit of bread. When supper was over, some bottles of peach brandy were produced, and the men began to drink freely, and then it was that matters commenced to get dangerous for John. Suddenly one of the men remembered about the young fellow whom he had thrown backwards off the horse, and who was lying very sick in the next room, and suggested that measures of retaliation should be taken, which would undoubtedly have been done had not the elderly Boer who had commanded the party interposed. This man was getting drunk like the others, but fortu- nately for John he got amiably drunk. " Let him alone," he said, " let him alone. We will send him to the commandant to-morrow. Frank Muller will know how to deal with him." John thought to himself that he certainly would. " Now, for myself," the man went on with a hiccough, " I bear no malice. We have thrashed the British and they have given up the country, so let bygones be by- gones, I say. Almighty, yes ! I am not proud, not I. If an Englishman takes off his hat to me I shall acknowledge it." This staved the fellows off for a while, but presently John's protector went away, and then the others began to get playful. They got their rifles and amused them- selves with levelling them at him, and making sham bets as to where they would hit him. John, seeing the emer- gency, backed his chair well into the corner of the wall and drew his revolver, which fortunately for himself he still had. " If any man interferes with me, by God, I'll shoot hinVl" he said, in good English, which they did not fail to understand. Undoubtedly as the evening went on it was only the possession of this revolver and his evident determination to use it that saved his life. At last things got very bad indeed, so bad that he found 332 JESS. it absolutely necessary to keep his eyes continually fixed, now on one and now on another, to prevent their putting a bullet through him unawares. He had twice appealed to the old woman, but she sat in her big chair with a sweet smile upon her fat face and refused to interfere. It is not every day that one gets the chance of seeing a real live English rooibaatje baited like an ant-bear on the flat. Presently, just as John in desperation was making up his mind to begin shooting right and left, and take his chance of cutting his way out, the saturnine Carolus, whose temper had never recovered the bowl of coffee, and who was besides very drunk, rushed forward with an oath and dealt a tremendous blow at him with the butt end of his rifle. John dodged the blow, which fell upon the back of the chair and smashed it to bits, and in another second Carolus's gentle soul would have departed to a better sphere, had not the old woman, seeing that matters were getting beyond a joke, come waddling down the room with mar- vellous activity and thrown herself between them. " There, there," she said, cuffing right and left with her fat fists, "be off with you, every one. I can't have this noise going on here. Come, off you all go, and get the horses into the stable; they will be right away by morning if you trust them to the Kaffirs." Carolus collapsed, and the other men, too, hesitated and drew back, whereupon, following up her advantage, the woman, to John's astonishment and relief, literally bun- dled the whole tribe of them out of the front door. "Now then, rooibaatje," said the old lady, briskly, when they had gone, " I like you because you are a brave man, and were not afraid when they mobbed you. Also, I don't want to have a mess made upon my floor here, or any noise or shooting. If those men come back and find you here they will first get rather drunker and then kill you, so you had better be off while you get the chance," and she pointed to the door. JESS. 333 " I am really much obliged to you, my aunt," said John, utterly astonished to find that she possessed a heart at all, and had more or less been playing a part all the evening. " Oh, as to that," she said, dryly, " it would be a great pity to kill the last English rooibaatje in the whole Brit- ish army; they ought to keep you as a curiosity. Here, take a tot of brandy before you go, it is a wet night, and sometimes when you are clear of the Transvaal and remem- ber this business, remember, too, that you owe your life to Tanta Coetzee. But I would not have saved you, not I, if you had not been so plucky. I like a man to be a man, and not like that miserable monkey Carolus. There, be off !" John poured out and gulped down half a tumblerful of the brandy, and in another moment was outside the house and had slipped off into the night. It was very dark and wet, for the rain-clouds had covered up the moon, and he soon realized that any attempt to look for his horse would only end in failure and in his recapture also. The only thing to do was to get away on foot in the direction of Mooifontein as quickly as he could; so off he went down the track across the veldt as hard as his stiff legs would take him. He had a ten miles' trudge before him, and with that cheerful acquiescence in circumstances over which he had no control which was one of his character- istics, he set to work to make the best of it. For the first hour or so all went well, and then to his intense disgust he discovered that he was off the track, a fact at which anybody who has ever had the pleasure on a dark night of wandering along a so-called road on the African veldt will scarcely be surprised. After wasting a quarter of an hour or more in a vain attempt to find the path, he struck out boldly for a dark-looking mass that loomed in the dis- tance, and which he took to be Mooifontein Hill. And so it was, only instead of keeping to the left, when he would have landed up at the house, or rather where the 334 JESS. house had stood, he unwittingly bore to the right, and thus went half round the hill before he found out his mistake. Nor would he have found it out then had he not chanced in the mist and darkness to turn into the mouth of the great gorge known as Leuw Kloof, where he had once, months before, had an interesting talk with Jess just be- fore she went to Pretoria. It was while he was blunder- ing and stumbling up this gorge that at length the rain ceased and the moon got out, it being then nearly mid- night. Its very first rays lit upon one of the extraordinary pillars of balanced bowlders, and by it he recognized the locality. As may be imagined, strong man as he was, John was by this time quite exhausted. For nearly a week he had been travelling incessantly, and for the last two nights he had not only not slept, but had endured a great deal of peril and mental excitement. Had it not been for the brandy Tanta Coetzee had given him he could not have got over the fifteen miles or so of ground he had covered, and now he was quite broken down, and felt that the only thing that he could do, wet through as he was, would be to lie down somewhere and sleep or die as the case might be. Then it was that the little cave near the top of the Kloof, the same from which Jess had watched the thunderstorm, came into his recollection. He had been there once with Bessie after their engagement, and she had told him that it was one of Jess's favorite spots. If he could once reach the cave he would at any rate get shelter and a dry place to lie on. It could not be more than three hundred yards away. So he struggled on bravely through the wet grass and over the scattered bowlders, until at last he came to the base of the huge column that had been shattered by the lightning before Jess's eyes. Thirty paces more and he was in the cave. With a sigh of utter exhaustion he flung himself down upon the rocky floor and was almost instantly buried in a profound sleep. CHAPTER XXXV. THE CONCLUSION OF THE MATTER. WHEN the rain ceased and the moon began to shine, Jess was still fleeing like a wild thing across the plain on the top of the mountain. She felt no sense of exhaustion now or even of weariness; her only idea was to get away, right away somewhere, where she could lose herself and nobody would ever see her again. Presently she came to the top of Leuw Kloof, and in a bewildered way recognized the spot and commenced to descend it. Here was a place where she might lie until she died, for no one ever came there, except now and again some wandering Kaffir herd. On she sprang, from rock to rock, a wild, weird figure, well in keeping with the solemn and titanic sadness of the place. Twice she fell, once right into the stream, but she took no heed, she did not even seem to feel it. At last she was at the bottom, now creeping like a black dot across the wide spaces of moonlight and now swallowed up in the shadow. There before her was the mouth of her little cave ; her strength was leaving her at last, and she was fain to creep into it, broken-hearted, crazed, and dying. " Oh, God, forgive me ! God forgive me !" she moaned, as she sank upon the rocky floor. " Bessie, I sinned against you, but I have washed away my sin. I did it for yu, Bessie love, not for myself. I had rather have died than kill him for myself. You will marry John now, and you will never, never know what I did for you. I am going to die. I know that. I am dying. Oh, if only I could see his face once more before I die before I die !" 336 JESS. Slowly the westering moonlight crept down the black- ness of the rock. Now at last it peeped into the little cave and played upon John's sleeping face lying within two feet of her. Her prayer had been granted ; there was her lover by her side. With a start and a great sigh of doubt she saw him. Was he dead ? She dragged herself to him on her hands and knees and listened for his breathing, if perchance he still breathed and was not a vision. Then it came, strong and slow, the breath of a man in deep sleep. Should she try to wake him ? What for ? To tell him she was a murderess and then to let him see her die, for instinct told her that nature was exhausted ; and she knew that she was certainly going going fast. No, a hundred times, no ! Only she put her hand into her breast and drew out the pass on the back of which she had written to him, and thrust it between his listless fingers. It should speak for her. Then she leaned over him, and watched his sleeping face, a very incarnation of infinite, despairing tenderness and love that is deeper than the grave. And as she watched, gradually her feet and legs grew cold and numb, till at length she could feel nothing below her bosom. She was dead nearly to the heart. The rays of the moon faded slowly from the level of the little cave, and John's face grew dark to her darken- ing sight. She bent down and kissed him once, twice, thrice. Then at last the end came. There was a great flashing of light before her eyes, and the roaring as of a thousand seas within her ears, and her head sank gently on her lover's breast as on a pillow ; and there she died, and passed upward towards the wider life and larger liberty, or perchance downward into the depths of an eternal sleep. Poor dark-eyed, deep-hearted Jess ! This was the frui- tion of her love and this her bridal -bed. JESS. 337 It was done. She had gone, taking with her the secret of her self-sacrifice and crime, and the night winds moan- ing amid the rocks sang their requiem over her. Here she first had learned her love, and here she closed its book. She might have been a great and good woman. She might even have been a happy woman. But fate had or- dained it otherwise. Women such as she are rarely happy in the world. It is not well to stake all one's fortune on a throw, and lack the craft to load the dice. Well, her troubles are done with. "Think gently of her" and let her pass in peace. The hours grew on towards the morning, but John, the dead face of the w r oman he had loved still pillowed on his breast, neither dreamed nor woke. There was a strange and dreadful irony in the situation, and one which some- times finds a counterpart in our waking life, but still the man slept, and the dead woman lay till the night turned into the morning and the world woke up as usual. The sunbeams slid into the cave, and played indifferently upon the ashen face and tangled curls, and on the broad chest of the living man whereon they rested. An old baboon peeped round the rocky edge, and manifested no sur- prise, only indignation, at the intrusion of humanity, dead or alive, into his dominions. Yes, the world woke up as usual, and recked not and troubled not because Jess was dead. It was so accustomed to such sights. And at last John woke up too. He stretched his arms and yawned, and then for the first time became aware of the weight upon his breast. He glanced down and saw dimly at first then more clearly. There are some things into which it is wisest not to pry, and one of them is the first agony of a strong man's grief. Happy was it for him that his brain did not give way iii 22 ' 338 JESS. that first lonely hour of bottomless despair. But he lived through it, as we do live through such things, and was sane and sound after it, though it left its mark upon his life. Two hours later a gaunt, haggard figure came stum- bling down the hillside towards the site of Mooifontein, bearing something in his arms. The whole place was in commotion. Here and there were knots of Boers talking excitedly, who, when they saw the man coming, hurried up to see who it was and what he carried. But when they knew, they fell back awed and without a word, and he too passed through them without a word. For a mo- ment he hesitated, realizing that the house was burned down, and then turned into the wagon-shed, and laid his burden down upon the saw-bench on which Frank Muller had sat as judge upon the previous day. Then at last he spoke in a hoarse voice, " Where is the old man ?" One of them pointed to the door of the little room. " Open it !" he said, so fiercely that they again fell back and obeyed him without a word. " John ! John !" cried Silas Croft. " Thank God you have come back to us from the dead !" and, trembling with joy and surprise, he would have fallen upon his neck. "Hush !" he answered ; "I have brought the dead with me." And he led him to where she lay. During the day the Boers all went and left them alone. Now that Frank Muller was dead there was no thought among them of carrying out the sentence upon their old neighbor. Besides, there was no warrant for the execu- tion, even had they 'desired so to do, for their comman- dant had died leaving it unsigned. So they held a sort of informal inquest upon their leader's body, and then buried JESS. 339 him in the little graveyard that was planted with the four red gums, one at each corner, and walled in on the hillside at the back of where the house had stood. Rather than be at the pains of hollowing out another, they buried him in the very grave that he had caused to be dug to receive the body of Silas Croft. -Who had murdered Frank Muller was and remains a mystery among them to this day. The knife was identi- fied by the natives about the farm as belonging to the Hottentot Jantje, and a Hottentot was seen running from the place of the deed and hunted for some way, but could not be caught or heard of again. Therefore many of them are of the opinion that he is the guilty man. Others, again, believe that the crime rests upon the shoulders of the villainous one-eyed Kaffir, Hendrik, his own servant, who had also mysteriously vanished. But as they have never found either of them, and are not likely to, the point remains a moot one. Nor, indeed, did they take any great pains to hunt for them. Frank Muller was not a popular character, and the fact of a man coming to a mysterious end does not produce any great sensation among a rough people and in rough times. On the following day old Silas Croft, Bessie, and John Niel also buried their dead in the little graveyard on the hillside, and there she lies, some ten feet of earth only be- tween her and the man on whom she was the instrument of vengeance. But they never knew that, or even gue>-r-I it. They never even knew that she had been near Mooi- fontein on that awful night. Nobody knew it except Jantje, and Jantje, haunted by the footfall of the. pursuing Boers, was gone from the ken of the white man far into the wilds of Central Africa. " John," said the old man, when they had filled in the grave, " this is no country for Englishmen. Let us go home to England." John bowed his head in assent. Fortunately the means were not wanting, although they 340 JESS. were practically ruined, for the thousand pounds he had paid to Silas for a third interest in the farm still lay, to- gether with another two hundred and fifty pounds, in the Standard Bank at Newcastle, in Natal. And so, in due course, they went. And now what more is there to tell ? Jess, to those who read what has been written as it is meant to be read, was the soul of it all, and Jess is dead. It is useless to set a lifeless thing upon its feet, rather let us strive to follow the soarings of the spirit. Jess is dead and her story at an end. One word more. After some difficulty JohnNiel, with- in three months of his arrival in England, got employment as a land agent to a large estate in Rutlandshire, which position he fills to this day, with credit to himself and such advantage to the property as can be expected nowa- days. Also, he in due course became the beloved husband of sweet Bessie Croft, and on the whole may be considered a happy man. At times, however, a sorrow of which his wife knows nothing gets the better of him, and for a while he is not himself. He is not a man much given to sentiment or specula- tion, but sometimes, when his day's work is done and he strays down to his garden gate and looks out at the dim and peaceful English landscape below, and then at the wide, star-strewn heavens above, he wonders if the hour will ever come when he will once more see those dark and passionate eyes, and hear that sweet, remembered voice. For he feels as near to his lost love now that she is dead as he did when she was. yet alive, and from time to time he seems to clearly know that if there prove to be an in- dividual future for us struggling mortals, he will find Jess waiting to greet him at its gates. Till: EXD. SHE: A HISTORY OF ADVENTURE. By H. RIDER HAGGARD, Author of "King Solomon's Mines," "Jess," etc. Profusely Illustrated. 4to, Paper, 25 cents. There are color, splendor, and passion everywhere ; action in abundance ; constant variety, and absorbing interest. Mr. Haggard does not err on the side of niggardliness ; he is only too affluent in description and ornament. . . . There is a largeness, a freshness, and a strength about him which are full of promise and encouragement, the more since he has placed himself so unmistakably on the romantic side of fiction ; that is, on the side of truth and permanent value. ... He is already one of the foremost modern romance writers. N. Y. World. It seems to me that Mr. Haggard has supplied to us in this book the complement of " Dr. Jeckyl." He has shown us what woman's love for man really means. The Journalist. One cannot too much applaud Mr. Haggard for his power in working up to a weird situation and holding the reader at the ghost-story pitch with- out ever absolutely entering the realm of the supernatural. ... It is a story to be read at one sitting, not in weekly parts. But its sensational- ism is fresh and stirring; its philosophy is conveyed in pages that glow with fine images and charm the reader like the melodious verse of Swin- burne. N. Y. Times. One of the most peculiar, vivid, and absorbing stories we have read for a long time. Boston Times. It is an exciting story, well told and cleverly illustrated. It is one of the books a story reader cannot afford to miss. Detroit Newt. It is a most marvellous tale, displaying a wonderfully powerful imag- ination, picturesque and striking descriptions, and unflagging in: For supernatural effects, nothing like it has appeared since " Vathek." It has been read by thousands in its serial form ; it will be read and reread by more in its book form. It is the most thrilling and entrancing book of the day. American Bookseller, N. Y. This latest story shows so peculiar, novel, and hitherto undeveloped a field for mingled research and mystery that one who has not the gift of wonder-building, and yet is fascinated with it all, simply reads and marvels and acknowledges the master-hand. Brooklyn Times. Whoever has read "King Solomon's Mines" will have an eye out for further books by H. Rider Haggard. His latest contribution to literature is " She," a wonderful book, with still more remarkable pictures. Advertiser, Rochester, N. Y. PUBLISHED BY HARPER n, and we put down the book with a sigh to think our pleasant task of rend- ing it is finished. The author's lines must have fallen to her in very pleasant places ; or she has, perhaps, within herself the wealth of woman- ly love and tenderness she pours so freely into all she writes. Such books as hers do much to elevate the moral tone of the day a quality sadly wanting in novels of the time. Whitehall Review, London. PUBLISHED BY HARPER & BROTHERS, NEW YORK. HAKPXK & BROTKKM will send the above icorkt by mail, pontage r